|
BOOK OF MORMON--PART 2 |
This page is part three of three: Index,
Part 1, and Part 2; of web site
biblesecrets.org
Copyright © 2000 DSOTO-
|
|
ALMA |
The account of Alma, who was
the son of Alma, the first and chief judge over the people of Nephi, and also
the high priest over the Church. An account of the reign of the judges, and the
wars and contentions among the people. And also an account of a war between the
Nephites and the Lamanites, according to the record of Alma, the first and chief
judge.
CHAPTERS
|
|
||||||||||||||||
ALMA 1
1 NOW it came to pass that in the first year of the reign of the judges
over the people of Nephi,
From this time forward, king Mosiah having gone the way of all the
earth,
Having warred a good warfare, walking uprightly before God,
Leaving none to reign in his stead; nevertheless,
He had established laws,
And they were acknowledged by the people;
Therefore they were obliged to abide by the laws which he had made.
2 And it came to pass that in the first year of the reign of Alma in the
judgment-seat,
There was a man brought before him to be judged, a man who was
large and was noted for his much strength.
3 And he had gone about among the people, preaching to them that which he
termed to be the word of God,
Bearing down against the church; declaring unto the people that
every priest and teacher ought to become popular;
And they ought not to labor with their hands, but that they ought
to be supported by the people.
4 And he also testified unto the people that all mankind should be saved
at the last day,
And that they need not fear nor tremble, but that they might lift
up their heads and rejoice;
For the Lord had created all men, and had also redeemed all men;
And, in the end, all men should have eternal life.
5 And it came to pass that he did teach these things so much,
That many did believe on his words, even so many that they
began to support him and give him money.
6 And he began to be lifted up in the pride of his heart, and to wear
very costly apparel,
Yea, and even began to establish a church after the manner of his
preaching.
7 And it came to pass as he was going, to preach to those who believed on
his word,
He met a man who belonged to the church of God, yea, even
one of their teachers;
And he began to contend with him sharply, that he might lead away
the people of the church;
But the man withstood him, admonishing him with the words of God.
8 Now the name of the man was Gideon; and it was he,
Who was an instrument in the hands of God,
In delivering the people of Limhi out of bondage.
9 Now, because Gideon withstood him with the words of God he was wroth
with Gideon,
And drew his sword and began to smite him. Now Gideon being
stricken with many years,
Therefore he was not able to withstand his blows; therefore he was
slain by the sword.
10 And the man who slew him was taken by the people of the church, and was brought
before Alma,
To be judged according to the crimes which he had committed.
11 And it came to pass that he stood before Alma,
And pleaded for himself with much boldness. But Alma said unto him:
Behold, this is the first time that priestcraft has been introduced among this people.
And behold, thou art not only guilty of priestcraft, but hast
endeavored to enforce it by the sword;
And were priestcraft to be enforced among this people it would
prove their entire destruction.
13 And thou hast shed the blood of a righteous man, yea, a man who has done much
good among his people;
And were we to spare thee his blood would come upon us for
vengeance.
14 Therefore thou art condemned to die according to the law which has been given us by Mosiah, our last
king;
And it has been acknowledged by this people; therefore this people
must abide by the law.
15 And it came to pass that they took him; and his name was Nehor;
And they carried him upon the top of the hill Manti,
And there he was caused, or rather did acknowledge, between the heavens
and the earth,
That what he had taught to the people was contrary to the word of God;
And
there he suffered an ignominious death.
16 Nevertheless, this did not put an end,
To the spreading of priestcraft through
the land;
For there were many who loved the vain things of the world,
And they went forth preaching false doctrines;
And this they did for the sake of riches and honor.
17 Nevertheless, they durst not lie, if it were known, for fear of the law,
For liars were punished; therefore they pretended to preach
according to their belief;
And now the law could have no power on any man for his belief.
18 And they durst not steal, for fear of the law,
For such were punished;
Neither durst they rob, nor murder,
For he that murdered was punished unto death.
19 But it came to pass that whosoever did not belong to the church of God,
Began to persecute those that did belong to the church of God, and
had taken upon them the name of Christ.
20 Yea, they did persecute them, and afflict them with all manner of words, and
this because of their humility;
Because they were not proud in their own eyes,
And because they did
impart the word of God, one with another, without money and without price.
21 Now there was a strict law among the people of the church, That there should not any man,
belonging to the church, Arise and persecute those that did not belong to the church,
And that there should be no persecution among
themselves.
22 Nevertheless, there were many among them who began to be proud,
And began to contend warmly with their adversaries, even unto
blows;
Yea, they would smite one another with their
fists.
23 Now this was in the second year of the reign of Alma,
And it was a cause of much affliction to the church;
Yea, it was the cause of much trial with the church.
24 For the hearts of many were hardened, and their names were blotted out,
That they were remembered no more among the people of God.
And also
many withdrew themselves from among them.
25 Now this was a great trial to those that did
stand fast in the faith;
Nevertheless, they were steadfast and immovable in keeping the
commandments of God,
And they bore with patience the persecution which was heaped upon
them.
26 And when the priests left their labor to impart the word of God unto the
people,
The people also left their labors to hear the word of God.
And when the priest had imparted unto them the word of God,
They all returned again diligently unto their labors;
And the priest, not esteeming himself above his
hearers,
For the preacher was no better than the hearer, neither was the
teacher any better than the learner;
And thus they were all equal, and they did all labor, every man
according to his strength.
27 And they did impart of their substance, every man according to that which he
had,
To the poor, and the needy, and the sick, and the afflicted;
And they did not wear costly apparel, yet they were neat and comely.
28 And thus they did establish the affairs of the church;
And thus they began to have continual peace again, notwithstanding
all their persecutions.
29 And now, because of the steadiness of the church they began to be exceedingly
rich,
Having abundance of all things whatsoever they stood
in need──
An abundance of flocks and herds, and fatlings of every kind,
And also abundance of grain,
And of gold, and of silver, and of precious things,
And abundance of silk and fine-twined linen, and all manner of good
homely cloth.
30 And thus, in their prosperous circumstances, they did not send away any who
were naked,
Or that were hungry, or that were athirst, or that were sick, or
that had not been nourished;
And they did not set their hearts upon riches; therefore they were
liberal to all,
Both old and young, both bond and free, both male and female,
Whether out of the church or in the church,
Having no respect to persons as to those who stood in need.
31 And thus they did prosper and become far more wealthy than those who did not
belong to their church.
32 For those who did not belong to their church did indulge themselves in
sorceries,
And in idolatry or idleness, and in babblings, and in envyings and
strife;
Wearing costly apparel; being lifted up in the pride of their own
eyes;
Persecuting, lying, thieving, robbing, committing
whoredoms,
And murdering, and all manner of wickedness; nevertheless,
The law was put in force upon all those,
Who did transgress it, inasmuch as it was possible.
33 And it came to pass that by thus exercising the law upon them,
Every man suffering according to that which he had done,
They became more still, and durst not commit any wickedness if it
were known;
Therefore, there was much peace among the people of Nephi until the
fifth year of the reign of the judges.
![]()
ALMA 2
1 AND it came to pass in the commencement of the fifth year of their reign,
There
began to be a contention among the people;
For a certain man, being called Amlici,
He being a very cunning man,
Yea, a wise man as to the wisdom of the world,
He being after the order of the man that slew Gideon by the sword,
Who
was executed according to the law──now this Amlici had, by his cunning,
Drawn away much people after him; even so
much that they began to be very powerful;
And they began to endeavor to
establish Amlici to be a king over the people.
3 Now this was alarming to the people of the church,
And also to all those who
had not been drawn away after the persuasions of Amlici;
For they knew that
according to their law that such things must be established by the voice of the
people.
4 Therefore, if it were possible that Amlici should gain the voice of the
people, he, being a wicked man,
Would deprive them of their rights and
privileges of the church;
For it was his intent to destroy the church of God.
5 And it came to pass that the people,
Assembled themselves together throughout
all the land,
Every man according to his mind, whether it were for or against Amlici,
In separate bodies, having much dispute and wonderful contentions one
with another.
6 And thus they did assemble themselves together to cast in their voices
concerning the matter;
And they were laid before the judges. And it came to pass,
That the voice of the people came against Amlici,
That he
was not made king over the people.
8 Now this did cause much joy in the hearts of those who were against him;
But Amlici did stir up those who were in his favor to anger against those who were
not in his favor.
9 And it came to pass that they gathered themselves together, and did consecrate Amlici to be their king.
10 Now when Amlici was made king over them he commanded them that they should,
Take up arms against their brethren;
And this he did that he might subject them
to him.
11 Now the people of Amlici were distinguished by the name of Amlici,
Being
called Amlicites; and the remainder were called Nephites, or the people of God.
12 Therefore the people of the Nephites were aware of the intent of the
Amlicites,
And therefore they did prepare to meet them;
Yea, they did arm
themselves with swords, and with cimeters,
And with bows, and with arrows, and
with stones, and with slings,
And with all manner of weapons of war, of every kind.
13 And thus they were prepared to meet the Amlicites at the time of their
coming.
And there were appointed captains, and higher captains, and chief
captains, according to their numbers.
14 And it came to pass that Amlici did arm his men with all manner of weapons of
war of every kind;
And he also appointed rulers and leaders over his people to
lead them to war against their brethren.
15 And it came to pass that the Amlicites came upon the hill Amnihu,
Which was
east of the river Sidon, which ran by the land of Zarahemla,
And there they
began to make war with the Nephites.
16 Now Alma, being the chief judge and the governor,
Of the people of Nephi,
Therefore he went up with his people,
Yea, with his captains, and chief
captains,
Yea, at the head of his armies against the Amlicites to
battle.
17 And they began to slay the Amlicites upon the hill east of Sidon.
And the Amlicites did contend with the Nephites with great strength,
Insomuch that many
of the Nephites did fall before the Amlicites.
18 Nevertheless the Lord did strengthen the hand of the Nephites,
That they slew
the Amlicites with great slaughter, that they began to flee before them.
19 And it came to pass that the Nephites did pursue the Amlicites all that day,
And did slay them with much slaughter, insomuch that there were slain of the Amlicites,
Twelve thousand five hundred thirty and two souls;
And there were
slain of the Nephites,
Six thousand five hundred sixty and two souls.
20 And it came to pass that when Alma could pursue the Amlicites no longer,
He
caused that his people should pitch their tents, in the valley of Gideon,
The
valley being called after that Gideon who was slain by the hand of Nehor with
the sword;
And in this valley the Nephites did pitch their tents for the night.
21 And Alma sent spies to follow the remnant of the Amlicites,
That he might
know of their plans and their plots,
Whereby he might guard himself against
them,
That he might preserve his people from being destroyed.
22 Now those whom he had sent out to watch the camp of the Amlicites,
Were called: Zeram, and Amnor, and Manti, and Limher;
These were they who went out with their
men to watch the camp of the Amlicites.
23 And it came to pass that on the morrow they returned into the camp of the
Nephites in great haste,
Being greatly astonished, and struck with much fear,
saying:
24 Behold, we followed the camp of the Amlicites,
And to our great astonishment,
in the land of Minon,
Above the land of Zarahemla, in the course of the land of
Nephi,
We saw a numerous host of the Lamanites; and behold, the Amlicites have
joined them;
25 And they are upon our brethren in that land; and they are fleeing before them
with their flocks,
And their wives, and their children, towards our city;
And except we make haste they obtain possession of our city,
And our fathers, and
our wives, and our children be slain.
26 And it came to pass that the people of Nephi took their tents, and departed,
Out of the valley of Gideon towards their city, which was the city of Zarahemla.
27 And behold, as they were crossing the river Sidon, the Lamanites and the Amlicites,
Being as numerous almost, as it were, as the sands of the sea, came
upon them to destroy them.
28 Nevertheless, the Nephites being strengthened by the hand of the Lord,
Having
prayed mightily to him that he would deliver them,
Out of the hands of their
enemies, therefore the Lord did hear their cries,
And did strengthen them, and
the Lamanites and the Amlicites did fall before them.
29 And it came to pass that Alma fought with Amlici with the sword, face to
face;
And they did contend mightily, one with another.
30 And it came to pass that Alma,
Being a man of God,
Being exercised with much
faith,
Cried, saying: O Lord, have mercy and spare my life,
That I may be an
instrument in thy hands to save and preserve this people.
31 Now when Alma had said these words he contended again with Amlici;
And he was
strengthened, insomuch that he slew Amlici with the sword.
32 And he also contended with the king of the Lamanites;
But the king of the Lamanites fled back from before Alma,
And sent his guards to contend with Alma.
33 But Alma, with his guards, contended with the guards,
Of the king of the
Lamanites until he slew and drove them back.
34 And thus he cleared the ground, or rather the bank,
Which was on the west of
the river Sidon,
Throwing the bodies of the Lamanites who had been slain,
Into
the waters of Sidon, that thereby his people might have room to cross,
And
contend with the Lamanites and the Amlicites on the west side of the river Sidon.
35 And it came to pass that when they had all crossed the river Sidon,
That the
Lamanites and the Amlicites began to flee before them,
Notwithstanding they were
so numerous,
That they could not be numbered.
36 And they fled before the Nephites towards the wilderness,
Which was west and
north, away beyond the borders of the land;
And the Nephites did pursue them
with their might, and did slay them.
37 Yea, they were met on every hand, and slain and driven,
Until they were
scattered on the west, and on the north,
Until they had reached the wilderness, which was called Hermounts;
And it was that part of the wilderness which was
infested by wild and ravenous beasts.
38 And it came to pass that many died in the wilderness of their wounds,
And
were devoured by those beasts and also the vultures of the air;
And their bones
have been found, and have been heaped up, on the earth.
![]()
1 AND it came to pass that the Nephites who were not slain by the weapons of
war,
After having buried those who had been slain──now the number of the slain,
Were not numbered, because of the greatness of their number──
After they had
finished burying their dead,
They all returned to their lands, and to their
houses, and their wives, and their children.
2 Now many women and children had been slain with the sword, and also many of
their flocks and their herds;
And also many of their fields of grain were
destroyed, for they were trodden down by the hosts of men.
3 And now as many of the Lamanites and the Amlicites who had been slain upon the
bank of the river Sidon,
Were cast into the waters of Sidon; and behold their
bones are in the depths of the sea, and they are many.
4 And the Amlicites were distinguished from the Nephites,
For they had marked
themselves with red,
In their foreheads after the manner of the Lamanites;
Nevertheless they had not shorn their heads like unto the Lamanites.
5 Now the heads of the Lamanites were shorn; and they were naked,
Save it were
skin which was girded about their loins,
And also their armor, which was girded
about them,
And their bows, and their arrows,
And their stones, and their
slings, and so forth.
6 And the skins of the Lamanites were dark, according to the mark,
Which was set
upon their fathers, which was a curse upon them because of their transgression,
And their rebellion against their brethren, who consisted of Nephi,
Jacob, and
Joseph, and Sam, who were just and holy men.
7 And their brethren sought to destroy them,
Therefore they were cursed; and the
Lord God set a mark upon them,
Yea, upon Laman and Lemuel, and also the sons of
Ishmael, and Ishmaelitish women.
8 And this was done that their seed might be distinguished from the seed of
their brethren,
That thereby the Lord God might preserve his people, that they
might not mix,
And believe in incorrect traditions which would prove their
destruction.
9 And it came to pass that whosoever did mingle his seed,
With that of the
Lamanites did bring the same curse upon his seed.
10 Therefore, whosoever suffered himself to be led away by the Lamanites,
Was called under that head, and there was a mark set upon him.
11 And it came to pass that whosoever would not believe in the tradition of the
Lamanites,
But believed those records which were brought out of the land of
Jerusalem,
And also in the tradition of their fathers, which were correct,
Who
believed in the commandments of God and kept them,
Were called the Nephites, or
the people of Nephi,
From that time forth──
12 And it is they who have kept the records,
Which are true of their people, and
also of the people of the Lamanites.
13 Now we will return again to the Amlicites, for they also had a mark set upon
them;
Yea, they set the mark upon themselves, yea, even a mark of red upon their foreheads.
14 Thus the word of God is fulfilled, for these are the words which he said to
Nephi:
Behold, the Lamanites have I cursed, and I will set a mark on them,
That
they and their seed may be separated from thee and thy seed,
From this time
henceforth and forever, except they repent,
Of their wickedness and turn to me,
That I may have mercy upon them.
15 And again: I will set a mark upon him,
That mingleth his seed with thy
brethren, that they may be cursed also.
16 And again: I will set a mark upon him that fighteth against thee and thy
seed.
17 And again, I say he that departeth from thee shall no more be called thy
seed;
And I will bless thee, and whomsoever shall be called thy seed, henceforth
and forever;
And these were the promises of the Lord unto Nephi and to his seed.
18 Now the Amlicites knew not that they were fulfilling the words of God,
When
they began to mark themselves in their foreheads;
Nevertheless they had come out
in open rebellion against God;
Therefore it was expedient that the curse should fall upon them.
19 Now I would that ye should see that they brought upon themselves the curse;
And even so doth every man that is cursed bring upon himself his own
condemnation.
20 Now it came to pass that not many days after the battle which was fought in
the land of Zarahemla,
By the Lamanites and the Amlicites, that there was
another army of the Lamanites,
Came in upon the people of Nephi, in the same
place where the first army met the Amlicites.
21 And it came to pass that there was an army sent to drive them out of their
land.
22 Now Alma himself being afflicted with a wound did not go up to battle at this
time against the Lamanites;
23 But he sent up a numerous army against them; and they went up and slew many
of the Lamanites,
And drove the remainder of them out of the borders of their
land.
24 And then they returned again and began to establish peace in the land,
Being
troubled no more for a time with their enemies. Now all these things were done,
Yea, all these wars and contentions were commenced and ended in the fifth year of the reign of the judges.
26 And in one year were thousands and tens of thousands of souls sent to the
eternal world,
That they might reap their rewards according to their works,
Whether they were good or whether they were bad,
To reap eternal happiness or
eternal misery,
According to the spirit which they listed to obey,
Whether it be
a good spirit or a bad one. For every man receiveth wages,
Of him whom he listeth to obey, and this
according to the words of the spirit of prophecy;
Therefore let it be according
to the truth. And thus endeth the fifth year of the reign of the judges.
![]()
1 NOW it came to pass in the sixth year of the reign of the judges over the
people of Nephi,
There were no contentions nor wars in the land of Zarahemla;
2 But the people were afflicted,
Yea, greatly afflicted for the loss of their
brethren,
And also for the loss of their flocks and herds,
And also for the loss of their fields of grain,
Which were trodden under foot and destroyed by
the Lamanites.
3 And so great were their afflictions that every soul had cause to mourn;
And
they believed that it was the judgments of God sent upon them,
Because of their
wickedness and their abominations;
Therefore they were awakened to a remembrance
of their duty.
4 And they began to establish the church more fully;
Yea, and many were baptized
in the waters of Sidon,
And were joined to the church of God;
Yea, they were
baptized by the hand of Alma,
Who had been consecrated the high priest,
Over the
people of the church, by the hand of his father Alma.
5 And it came to pass in the seventh year of the reign of the judges,
There were
about three thousand five hundred souls that united themselves,
To the church of
God and were baptized. And thus ended the seventh year,
Of the reign of the
judges over the people of Nephi;
And there was continual peace in all that time.
6 And it came to pass in the eighth year of the reign of the judges,
That the
people of the church began to wax proud, because of their exceeding riches,
And
their fine silks, and their fine-twined linen, and because of their many flocks
and herds,
And their gold and their silver, and all manner of precious things,
which they had obtained by their industry;
And in all these things were they
lifted up in the pride of their eyes,
For they began to wear very costly
apparel.
7 Now this was the cause of much affliction to Alma,
Yea, and to many of the
people whom Alma had consecrated,
To be teachers, and priests, and elders over
the church;
Yea, many of them were sorely grieved for the wickedness,
Which they
saw had begun to be among their people.
8 For they saw and beheld with great sorrow,
That the people of the church began
to be lifted up in the pride of their eyes,
And to set their hearts upon riches and upon the vain things of the world,
That they began to be scornful, one
towards another, and they began to persecute,
Those that did not believe according to their own will and pleasure.
9 And thus, in this eighth year of the reign of the judges,
There began to be
great contentions among the people of the church;
Yea, there were envyings, and
strife, and malice, and persecutions, and pride,
Even to exceed the pride of
those who did not belong to the church of God.
10 And thus ended the eighth year of the reign of the judges;
And the wickedness of the church,
Was a great stumbling-block,
To those who did not belong to the
church;
And thus the church began to fail in its progress.
11 And it came to pass in the commencement of the ninth year,
Alma saw the
wickedness of the church, and he saw also,
That the example of the church began
to lead those who were unbelievers on,
From one piece of iniquity to another,
thus bringing on the destruction of the people.
12 Yea, he saw great inequality among the people, some lifting themselves up
with their pride,
Despising others, turning their backs upon the needy and the
naked,
And those who were hungry, and those who were athirst,
And those who were
sick and afflicted.
13 Now this was a great cause for lamentations among the people.
While others
were abasing themselves, succoring those who stood in need of their succor,
Such
as imparting their substance to the poor and the needy, feeding the hungry,
And
suffering all manner of afflictions, for Christ's sake,
Who should come
according to the spirit of prophecy;
14 Looking forward to that day, thus retaining a remission of their sins;
Being
filled with great joy because of the resurrection of the dead,
According to the
will and power and deliverance of Jesus Christ from the bands of death.
15 And now it came to pass that Alma, having seen the afflictions of the humble
followers of God,
And the persecutions which were heaped upon them by the remainder
of his people,
And seeing all their inequality, began to be very sorrowful;
Nevertheless the Spirit of the Lord did not fail him.
16 And he selected a wise man who was among the elders of the church,
And gave him power according to the voice of the people,
That he might have power to
enact laws according to the laws which had been given,
And to put them in force
according to the wickedness and the crimes of the people.
17 Now this man's name was Nephihah, and he was appointed chief judge;
And he
sat in the judgment-seat to judge and to govern the people.
18 Now Alma did not grant unto him the office of high priest,
But he retained the office of high priest unto himself;
But he delivered
the judgment-seat unto Nephihah.
19 And this he did that he himself might go forth among his people,
Or among the
people of Nephi, that he might preach the word of God unto them,
To stir them up
in remembrance of their duty, and that he might pull down, by the word of God,
All the pride and craftiness and all the contentions which were among his
people,
Seeing no way that he might reclaim them save it were in bearing down in
pure testimony against them.
20 And thus in the commencement of the ninth year of the reign of the judges
over the people of Nephi,
Alma delivered up the judgment-seat to Nephihah,
And
confined himself wholly to the high priesthood of the holy order of God,
To the
testimony of the word, according to the spirit of revelation and prophecy.
![]()
1 NOW it came to pass that Alma began to deliver the word of God unto the
people,
First in the land of Zarahemla, and from thence throughout all the land.
2 And these are the words which he spake to the people in the church,
Which was
established in the city of Zarahemla,
According to his own record, saying:
3 I, Alma, having been consecrated by my father,
Alma, to be a high priest over
the church of God,
He having power and authority from God to do these things,
Behold, I say unto you that he began to establish a church in the land,
Which was
in the borders of Nephi; yea, the land which was called the land of Mormon;
Yea,
and he did baptize his brethren in the waters of Mormon.
4 And behold, I say unto you, they were delivered,
Out of the hands of the people of king Noah, by the mercy and power of God.
5 And behold, after that, they were brought into bondage,
By the hands of the
Lamanites in the wilderness;
Yea, I say unto you, they were in captivity,
And again the Lord did deliver them out of bondage,
By the power of his word; and we
were brought into this land,
And here we began to establish the church of God
throughout this land also.
6 And now behold, I say unto you, my brethren, you that belong to this church,
Have you sufficiently retained in remembrance the captivity of your fathers?
Yea, and have you sufficiently retained in remembrance his mercy and
long-suffering towards them?
And moreover, have ye sufficiently retained in
remembrance that he has delivered their souls from hell?
7 Behold, he changed their hearts; yea, he awakened them out of a deep sleep,
and they awoke unto God.
Behold, they were in the midst of darkness;
Nevertheless, their souls were illuminated by the light of the everlasting word;
Yea, they were encircled about by the bands of death, and the chains of hell,
And an everlasting destruction did await them.
8 And now I ask of you, my brethren,
Were they destroyed?
Behold, I say unto
you, Nay, they were not.
9 And again I ask, were the bands of death broken,
And the chains of hell which
encircled them about, were they loosed?
I say unto you, Yea, they were loosed, and their souls did expand,
And they did sing redeeming love. And I say unto you that they are saved.
10 And now I ask of you, on what conditions are they saved?
Yea, what grounds had
they to hope for salvation?
What is the cause of their being loosed,
From the
bands of death, yea, and also the chains of hell?
11 Behold, I can tell you──did not my father Alma believe in the words,
Which
were delivered by the mouth of Abinadi? And was he not a holy prophet?
Did he
not speak the words of God, and my father Alma believe them?
12 And according to his faith there was a mighty change wrought in his heart.
Behold I say unto you that this is all true.
13 And behold, he preached the word unto your fathers,
And a mighty change was also wrought in their hearts,
And they humbled themselves and put their trust in the
true and living God.
And behold, they were faithful until the end;
therefore they were saved.
14 And now behold, I ask of you, my brethren of the church, have ye spiritually
been born of God?
Have ye received his image in your countenances? Have ye
experienced this mighty change in your hearts?
15 Do ye exercise faith in the redemption of him who created you? And do you look
forward with an eye of faith,
And view this mortal body raised in immortality,
and this corruption raised in incorruption,
To stand before God to be judged
according to the deeds which have been done in the mortal body?
16 I say unto you, can you imagine to yourselves that ye hear the voice of the
Lord,
Saying unto you, in that day: Come unto me ye blessed,
For behold, your
works have been the works of righteousness upon the face of the earth?
17 Or do ye imagine to yourselves that ye can lie unto the Lord in that day, and
say──
Lord, our works have been righteous works upon the face of the earth──and
that he will save you?
18 Or otherwise, can ye imagine yourselves brought before the tribunal of God,
With your souls filled with guilt and remorse,
Having a remembrance of all your
guilt,
Yea, a perfect remembrance of all your wickedness,
Yea, a remembrance
that ye have set at defiance the commandments of God?
19 I say unto you, can ye look up to God at that day with a pure heart and clean
hands?
I say unto you, can you look up, having the image of God engraven upon
your countenances?
20 I say unto you, can ye think of being saved when you have yielded
yourselves,
To become subjects to the devil? I say unto you,
Ye will know at that day that ye cannot be saved;
For there can no man be saved except his garments are washed white;
Yea, his garments must
be purified until they are cleansed from all stain,
Through the blood of him of
whom it has been spoken by our fathers,
Who should come to redeem his people
from their sins.
22 And now I ask of you, my brethren,
How will any of you feel, if ye shall stand before the bar of God,
Having your garments stained with blood and all
manner of filthiness?
Behold, what will these things testify against you?
23 Behold will they not testify that ye are murderers,
Yea, and also that ye are
guilty of all manner of wickedness?
24 Behold, my brethren, do ye suppose that such an one can have a place,
To sit
down in the kingdom of God, with Abraham, with Isaac, and with Jacob,
And also
all the holy prophets, whose garments are cleansed and are spotless, pure and
white?
25 I say unto you, Nay; except ye make our Creator a liar from the beginning;
Or suppose that he is a liar from the beginning,
Ye cannot suppose that such can
have place in the kingdom of heaven;
But they shall be cast out for they are the
children of the kingdom of the devil.
26 And now behold, I say unto you, my brethren, if ye have experienced a change
of heart,
And if ye have felt to sing the song of redeeming love, I would ask,
can ye feel so now?
27 Have ye walked, keeping yourselves blameless before God?
Could ye say, if ye
were called to die at this time,
Within yourselves, that ye have been sufficiently humble?
That your garments have been cleansed,
And made white
through the blood of Christ,
Who will come to redeem his people from their sins?
28 Behold, are ye stripped of pride? I say unto you, if ye are not,
Ye are not
prepared to meet God. Behold ye must prepare quickly;
For the kingdom of heaven
is soon at hand, and such an one hath not eternal life.
Behold, I say, is there one among you who is not stripped of envy?
I say unto
you that such an one is not prepared;
And I would that he should prepare
quickly,
For the hour is close at hand,
And he knoweth not when the time shall
come;
For such an one is not found guiltless.
30 And again I say unto you,
Is there one among you,
That doth make a mock of his
brother,
Or that heapeth upon him persecutions?
31 Wo unto such an one, for he is not prepared,
And the time is at hand that he
must repent or he cannot be saved!
32 Yea, even wo unto all ye workers of iniquity; repent, repent, for the Lord
God hath spoken it!
33 Behold, he sendeth an invitation unto all men, for the arms of mercy are extended towards them,
And he saith:
Repent, and I will receive you;
34 Yea, he saith: Come unto me and ye shall partake of the fruit of the tree of
life;
Yea, ye shall eat and drink of the bread and the waters of life freely;
35 Yea, come unto me and bring forth works of righteousness,
And ye shall not be
hewn down and cast into the fire──
36 For behold, the time is at hand,
That whosoever bringeth forth not good fruit,
Or whosoever doeth not the works of righteousness,
The same have cause to wail
and mourn.
37 O ye workers of iniquity;
Ye that are puffed up in the vain things of the
world,
Ye that have professed to have known the ways of righteousness,
Nevertheless have gone astray, as sheep having no shepherd,
Notwithstanding a
shepherd hath called after you,
And is still calling after you,
But ye will not
hearken unto his voice!
38 Behold, I say unto you, that the good shepherd doth call you;
Yea, and in his
own name he doth call you, which is the name of Christ;
And if ye will not
hearken unto the voice of the good shepherd,
To the name by which ye are called,
behold, ye are not the sheep of the good shepherd.
39 And now if ye are not the sheep of the good shepherd, of what fold are ye?
Behold, I say unto you, that the devil is your shepherd,
And ye are of his fold; and now, who can deny this?
Behold, I say unto you, whosoever denieth this,
Is a
liar and a child of the devil.
40 For I say unto you that whatsoever is good cometh from God,
And whatsoever is
evil cometh from the devil.
41 Therefore, if a man bringeth forth good works,
He hearkeneth unto the voice of
the good shepherd, and he doth follow him;
But whosoever bringeth forth evil
works, the same becometh a child of the devil,
For he hearkeneth unto his voice,
and doth follow him.
42 And whosoever doeth this must receive his wages of him;
Therefore, for his
wages he receiveth death,
As to things pertaining unto righteousness, being dead
unto all good works.
43 And now, my brethren, I would that ye should hear me, for I speak in the
energy of my soul;
For behold, I have spoken unto you plainly that ye cannot err,
Or, I have spoken according to the commandments of God.
44 For I am called to speak after this manner,
According to the holy order of God,
Which is in Christ Jesus;
Yea, I am commanded to stand and testify unto
this people,
The things which have been spoken by our fathers concerning the
things which are to come.
45 And this is not all. Do ye not suppose that I know
of these things myself?
Behold, I testify unto you that I do know that these things whereof I have
spoken are true.
And how do ye suppose that I know of their surety? Behold, I say unto you
They are made known unto me by the Holy Spirit of God.
Behold, I have fasted and prayed many days,
That I might know these things of
myself.
And now I do know of myself that are true;
For the Lord God hath
made them manifest unto me by his Holy Spirit;
And this is the spirit of
revelation which is in me.
47 And moreover, I say unto you that it has thus been revealed unto me,
That the
words which have been spoken by our fathers are true,
Even so according to the
spirit of prophecy which is in me,
Which is also by the manifestation of the
Spirit of God.
48 I say unto you, that I know of myself,
That whatsoever I shall say unto you,
Concerning that which is to come, is true;
And I say unto you, that I know that
Jesus Christ shall come,
Yea, the Son, the Only Begotten of the Father, full of
grace, and mercy, and truth.
And behold, it is he that cometh to take away the
sins of the world,
Yea, the sins of every man who steadfastly believeth on his
name.
49 And now I say unto you that this is the order after which I am called,
Yea,
to preach unto my beloved brethren, yea, and every one that dwelleth in the
land;
Yea, to preach unto all, both old and young, both bond and free;
Yea, I
say unto you the aged, and also the middle aged,
And the rising generation;
Yea,
to cry unto them that they must repent and be born again.
50 Yea, thus saith the Spirit: Repent, all ye ends of the earth, for the kingdom
of heaven is soon at hand;
Yea, the Son of God cometh in his glory, in his
might, majesty, power, and dominion.
Yea, my beloved brethren, I say unto you,
that the Spirit saith:
Behold the glory of the King of all the earth;
And also
the King of heaven,
Shall very soon shine forth among all the children of men.
51 And also the Spirit saith unto me, yea, crieth unto me with a mighty voice,
saying:
Go forth and say unto this people──Repent, for except ye repent ye can
in nowise inherit the kingdom of heaven.
52 And again I say unto you, the Spirit saith: Behold, the ax is laid at the
root of the tree;
Therefore every tree that bringeth not forth good fruit shall
be hewn down,
And cast into the fire, yea, a fire which cannot be consumed,
Even
an unquenchable fire.
Behold, and remember, the Holy One hath spoken it.
53 And now my beloved brethren, I say unto you, can ye withstand these sayings;
Yea, can ye lay aside these things, and trample the Holy One under
your feet;
Yea, can ye be puffed up in the pride of your hearts;
Yea, will ye still persist
in the wearing of costly apparel,
And setting your hearts upon the vain things of
the world, upon your riches?
54 Yea, will ye persist in supposing that ye are better one than another;
Yea,
will ye persist in the persecution of your brethren,
Who humble themselves and do walk after the holy order of God,
Wherewith they have been brought into this
church,
Having been sanctified by the Holy Spirit,
And they do bring forth works
which are meet for repentance──
55 Yea, and will you persist in turning your backs upon the poor,
And the needy, and in withholding your substance from them?
56 And finally, all ye that will persist in your wickedness, I say unto you,
That
these are they who shall be hewn down and cast into the fire except they
speedily repent.
57 And now I say unto you, all you that are desirous to follow the voice of the good shepherd,
Come ye out from the wicked, and be ye separate, and touch not
their unclean things;
And behold, their names shall be blotted out, that the names of the wicked,
Shall not be numbered among the names
of the righteous,
That the word of God may be fulfilled, which saith:
The names of the wicked shall not be mingled with the names of my
people;
58 For the names of the righteous shall be written in the book of life,
And unto
them will I grant an inheritance at my right hand.
And now, my brethren, what
have ye to say against this?
I say unto you, if ye speak against it,
It matters
not, for the word of God must be fulfilled.
59 For what shepherd is there among you having many sheep,
Doth not watch over
them, that the wolves enter not and devour his flock?
And behold, if a wolf
enter his flock doth he not drive him out?
Yea, and at the last, if he can, he
will destroy him.
60 And now I say unto you that the good shepherd doth call after you;
And if you
will hearken unto his voice he will bring you into his fold, and ye are his
sheep;
And he commandeth you that ye suffer no ravenous wolf to enter among you,
that ye may not be destroyed.
61 And now I, Alma, do command you in the language of him who hath commanded me,
That ye observe to do the words which I have spoken unto you.
62 I speak by way of command unto you that belong to the church;
And unto those
who do not belong to the church,
I speak by way of invitation,
Saying: Come and
be baptized unto repentance,
That ye also may be partakers of the fruit of the
tree of life.
![]()
1 AND now it came to pass that after Alma had made an end of speaking,
Unto the
people of the church, which was established in the city of Zarahemla,
He
ordained priests and elders, by laying on his hands according to the order of
God,
To preside and watch over the church. And it came to pass, that whosoever did not belong to the church,
Who repented of their sins were baptized unto repentance, and were
received into the church.
3 And it also came to pass that whosoever did belong to the church that did not
repent of their wickedness,
And humble themselves before God──I mean those who
were lifted up in the pride of their hearts──
The same were rejected, and their
names were blotted out,
That their names were not numbered among those of the
righteous.
4 And thus they began to establish the order of the church in the city of
Zarahemla.
5 Now I would that ye should understand that the word of God was liberally unto
all,
That none were deprived of the privilege of assembling themselves together
to hear the word of God.
6 Nevertheless the children of God were commanded that they should gather
themselves together oft,
And join in fasting and mighty prayer in behalf of the
welfare of the souls of those who knew not God.
7 And now it came to pass that when Alma had made these regulations he departed
from them,
Yea, from the church which was in the city of Zarahemla,
And went
over upon the east of the river Sidon,
Into the valley of Gideon,
There having
been a city built,
Which was called the city of Gideon,
Which was in the valley that was called Gideon,
Being called after the man who was slain by the hand of Nehor
with the sword.
8 And Alma went and began to declare the word of God unto the church,
Which was
established in the valley of Gideon, according to the revelation,
Of the truth of the word which had been spoken by his fathers,
And according to the spirit of
prophecy which was in him,
According to the testimony of Jesus Christ, the Son
of God,
Who should come to redeem his people from their sins,
And the holy order
by which he was called.
And thus it is written. Amen.
![]()
1 BEHOLD my beloved brethren, seeing that I have been permitted to come unto
you,
Therefore I attempt to address you in my language; yea, by my own mouth,
Seeing that it is the first time that I have spoken unto you,
By the words of my mouth,
I having been wholly confined to the judgment-seat,
Having had much
business that I could not come unto you.
2 And even I could not have come now, at this time, were it not,
That the
judgment-seat hath been given to another, to reign in my stead;
And the Lord in much mercy hath granted that I should come unto you.
3 And behold, I have come having great hopes and much desire,
That I should find
that ye had humbled yourselves before God,
And that ye had continued in the
supplicating of his grace,
That I should find that ye were blameless before him,
That I should find that ye were not,
In the awful dilemma that our brethren were
in at Zarahemla.
4 But blessed be the name of God, that he hath given me to know,
Yea, hath given
unto me the exceedingly great joy of knowing,
That they are established again in
the way of his righteousness.
5 And I trust, according to the Spirit of God which is in me,
That I shall also
have joy over you;
Nevertheless I do not desire that my joy over you,
Should come
by the cause of so much afflictions and sorrow,
Which I have had for the brethren
at Zarahemla;
For behold, my joy cometh over them after wading through much
affliction and sorrow.
6 But behold, I trust that ye are not in a state of so much unbelief as
were your brethren;
I trust that ye are not lifted up in the pride of your hearts;
Yea, I trust that ye have not set your hearts upon riches and the
vain things of the world;
Yea, I trust that you do not worship idols, but that ye do worship the true and the living God,
And that ye look forward for the remission of your sins,
with an everlasting faith, which is to come.
7 For behold, I say unto you there be many things to come;
And behold, there is
one thing which is of more importance than they all──
For behold, the time is not
far distant that the Redeemer liveth and cometh among his people.
8 Behold, I do not say that he will come among us at the time of his
dwelling in his mortal tabernacle;
For behold, the Spirit hath not said unto me that this
should be the case.
Now as to this thing I do not know; but this much I do know,
That the Lord God hath power to do all things which are according to his word.
9 But behold, the Spirit hath said this much unto me, saying: Cry unto this
people,
Saying──Repent ye, and prepare the way of the Lord, and walk in his
paths, which are straight;
For behold, the kingdom of heaven is at hand, and the
Son of God cometh upon the face of the earth.
10 And behold, he shall be born of Mary, at Jerusalem which is the land of our
forefathers,
She being a virgin, a precious and chosen vessel,
Who shall be
overshadowed and conceive by the power of the Holy Ghost,
And bring forth a son,
yea, even the Son of God. And he shall go forth,
Suffering pains and afflictions and temptations of
every kind;
And this that the word might be fulfilled which saith,
He will take
upon him the pains and the sicknesses of his people.
12 And he will take upon him death, that he may loose the bands of death which
bind his people;
And he will take upon him their infirmities, that his bowels
may be filled with mercy,
According to the flesh, that he may know according to
the flesh,
How to succor his people according to their infirmities.
13 Now the Spirit knoweth all things; nevertheless the Son of God,
Suffereth
according to the flesh that he might take upon him the sins of his people,
That
he might blot out their transgressions according to the power of his
deliverance;
And now behold, this is the testimony which is in me.
14 Now I say unto you that ye must repent, and be born again;
For the Spirit
saith if ye are not born again ye cannot inherit the kingdom of heaven;
Therefore come and be baptized unto repentance, that ye may be washed from your
sins,
That ye may have faith on the Lamb of God, who taketh away the sins of the
world,
Who is mighty to save and to cleanse from all unrighteousness.
15 Yea, I say unto you come and fear not,
And lay aside every sin, which easily
doth beset you,
Which doth bind you down to destruction, yea, come and go forth,
And show unto your God that ye are willing to repent of your sins,
And enter into
a covenant with him to keep his commandments,
And witness it unto him this day
by going into the waters of baptism.
16 And whosoever doeth this, and keepeth the commandments of God from
thenceforth,
The same will remember that I say unto him, yea, he will remember
that I have said unto him,
He shall have eternal life, according to the
testimony of the Holy Spirit, which testifieth in me.
17 And now my beloved brethren, do you believe these things? Behold, I say unto
you,
yea, I know that ye believe them; and the way that I know that ye believe
them,
Is by the manifestation of the Spirit which is in me.
And now because your faith is strong concerning that,
Yea, concerning the things which I have spoken,
Great is my joy. For as I said unto you from the beginning,
That I had much desire that ye
were not in the state of dilemma like your brethren,
Even so I have found that
my desires have been gratified.
19 For I perceive that ye are in the paths of righteousness;
I perceive that ye
are in the path,
Which leads to the kingdom of God;
Yea, I perceive that ye are
making his paths straight.
20 I perceive that it has been made known unto you,
By the testimony of his
word,
That he cannot walk in crooked paths;
Neither doth he vary from that which
he hath said;
Neither hath he a shadow of turning from the right to the left,
Or
from that which is right to that which is wrong; therefore, his course is one
eternal round.
21 And he doth not dwell in unholy temples; neither can filthiness or anything
which is unclean,
Be received into the kingdom of God; therefore I say unto you,
The time shall come, yea, and it shall be at the last day,
That he who is filthy
shall remain in his filthiness.
22 And now my beloved brethren, I have said these things unto you,
That I might
awaken you to a sense of your duty to God, that ye may walk blameless before
him,
That ye may walk after the holy order of God, after which ye have been
received.
23 And now I would that ye should be humble, and be submissive and gentle;
Easy
to be entreated; full of patience and long-suffering;
Being temperate in all
things;
Being diligent in keeping the commandments of God at all times;
Asking
for whatsoever things ye stand in need, both spiritual and temporal;
Always
returning thanks unto God for whatsoever things ye do receive.
24 And see that ye have faith, hope, and charity,
And then ye will always abound
in good works.
25 And may the Lord bless you, and keep your garments spotless,
That ye may at
last be brought to sit down with Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob,
And the holy
prophets who have been ever since the world began, having your garments spotless,
Even as their garments are spotless, in the kingdom of heaven, to go no more out.
26 And now my beloved brethren, I have spoken these words unto you,
According to
the Spirit which testifieth in me; and my soul doth exceedingly rejoice,
Because
of the exceeding diligence, and heed which ye have given unto my word.
27 And now, may the peace of God rest upon you, and upon your houses and lands,
And upon your flocks and herds, and all that you possess,
Your women and your
children,
According to your faith and good works,
From this time forth and
forever. And thus I have spoken. Amen.
![]()
1 AND now it came to pass that Alma returned from the land of Gideon,
After
having taught the people of Gideon many things which cannot be written,
` Having
established the order of the church, according as he had before done in the land
of Zarahemla,
Yea, he returned to his own house at Zarahemla to rest
himself from the labors which he had performed.
2 And thus ended the ninth year of the reign of the judges over the people of
Nephi.
3 And it came to pass in the commencement of the tenth year,
Of the reign of the
judges over the people of Nephi,
That Alma departed from thence,
And took his
journey over into the land of Melek,
On the west of the river Sidon, on the west
by the borders of the wilderness.
4 And he began to teach the people in the land of Melek according to the holy
order of God,
By which he had been called; and he began to teach the people
throughout all the land of Melek.
5 And it came to pass that the people came to him throughout all the borders of
the land,
Which was by the wilderness side. And they were baptized throughout all
the land;
6 So that when he had finished his work at Melek he departed thence,
And traveled three days journey on the north of the land of Melek;
And he came to a
city which was called Ammonihah.
7 Now it was the custom of the people of Nephi to call their lands,
And their
cities, and their villages, yea, even all their small villages,
After the name
of him who first possessed them; and thus it was with the land of Ammonihah.
8 And it came to pass that when Alma had come to the city of Ammonihah,
He began
to preach the word of God unto them.
9 Now Satan had gotten great hold,
Upon the hearts of the people of the city of Ammonihah;
Therefore they would not hearken unto the words
of Alma,
10 Nevertheless Alma labored much in the spirit, wrestling with God in mighty
prayer,
That he would pour out his Spirit upon the people who were in the city;
That he would also grant that he might baptize them unto repentance.
11 Nevertheless, they hardened their hearts, saying unto him:
Behold, we know
that thou art Alma;
And we know that thou art high priest over the church,
Which
thou hast established in many parts of the land, according to your tradition;
We are not of thy church, and we do not believe in such foolish traditions.
12 And now we know that because we are not of thy church we know that thou hast
no power over us;
And thou hast delivered up the judgment-seat unto Nephihah;
therefore thou art not the chief judge over us.
13 Now when the people had said this, and withstood all his words, and reviled
him, and spit upon him,
And caused that he should be cast out of their city, he
departed thence,
And took his journey towards the city which was called Aaron.
14 And it came to pass that while he was journeying thither,
Being weighed down
with sorrow,
Wading through much tribulation and anguish of soul,
Because of the
wickedness of the people who were in the city of Ammonihah,
It came to pass
while Alma was thus weighed down with sorrow,
Behold, an angel of the Lord
appeared unto him, saying:
15 Blessed art thou, Alma; therefore,
Lift up thy head and rejoice,
For thou
hast great cause to rejoice;
For thou hast been faithful in keeping the
commandments of God,
From the time which thou receivedst thy first message from him.
Behold, I am he that delivered it unto you.
16 And behold, I am sent to command thee,
That thou return to the city of Ammonihah,
And preach again unto the people of the city; yea, preach unto
them.
Yea, say unto them, except they repent the
Lord God will destroy them.
17 For behold, they do study at this time that they may destroy the liberty of
thy people,
(for thus saith the Lord) which is contrary to the statutes, and
judgments,
And commandments which he has given unto his people.
18 Now it came to pass that after Alma had received his message,
From the angel
of the Lord, he returned speedily to the land of Ammonihah.
And he entered the
city by another way, yea, by the way which is on the south of the city of Ammonihah.
19 And as he entered the city he was an hungered, and he said to a man:
Will ye
give to an humble servant of God something to eat?
20 And the man said unto him: I am a Nephite,
And I know that thou art a holy
prophet of God,
For thou art the man whom an angel said in a vision: Thou shalt
receive.
Therefore, go with me into my house and I will impart unto thee of my
food;
And I know that thou wilt be a blessing unto me and my house.
21 And it came to pass that the man received him into his house;
And the man was
called Amulek;
And he brought forth bread and meat and set before Alma.
22 And it came to pass that Alma ate bread and was filled;
And he blessed Amulek
and his house, and he gave thanks unto God.
23 And after he had eaten and was filled, he said unto Amulek:
I am Alma; and am
the high priest over the church of God throughout the land.
24 And behold, I have been called to preach the word of God among all this
people,
According to the spirit of revelation and prophecy;
And I was in this
land and they would not receive me,
But they cast me out and I was about to set
my back towards this land forever.
25 But behold, I have been commanded that I should turn again and prophesy unto
this people,
Yea, and to testify against them concerning their iniquities.
26 And now, Amulek, because thou hast fed me,
And taken me in, thou art blessed;
For I was an hungered, for I had fasted many days.
27 And Alma tarried many days with Amulek,
Before he began to preach unto the
people.
28 And it came to pass that the people did wax more gross in their iniquities.
29 And the word came to Alma, saying: Go; and also say unto my servant Amulek,
Go forth and prophesy unto this people, saying──Repent ye, for thus saith the
Lord,
Except ye repent I will visit this people in mine anger;
Yea, and I will
not turn my fierce anger away.
30 And Alma went forth, and also Amulek,
Among the people to declare the words of God unto them;
And they were filled with the Holy Ghost.
31 And they had power given unto them,
Insomuch they could not be confined
in dungeons;
Neither was it possible that any man could slay them; nevertheless,
They did not exercise their power until they were bound in bands and cast into
prison.
Now, this was done that the Lord might show forth his power in them.
32 And it came to pass that they went forth,
And began to preach and to prophesy unto the people,
According to the spirit and power which the Lord had given
them.
![]()
ALMA 9
1 AND again, I, Alma, having been commanded of God that I should take Amulek and
go forth,
And preach again unto this people, or the people who were in the city
of Ammonihah,
It came to pass as I began to preach unto them, they began to
contend with me, saying:
2 Who art thou? Suppose ye that we shall believe the testimony of one man,
Although he should preach unto us that the earth should pass away?
3 Now they understood not the words which they spake;
For they knew not that the
earth should pass away.
4 And they said also: We will not believe thy words,
If thou shouldst prophesy
that this great city should be destroyed in one day.
5 Now they knew not that God could do such marvelous works, for they were a
hard-hearted and a stiffnecked people.
6 And they said: Who is God, that sendeth no more authority than one man among
this people,
To declare unto them the truth of such great and marvelous things?
7 And they stood forth to lay their hands on me;
But behold, they did not.
And I
stood with boldness to declare unto them,
Yea, I did boldly testify unto them,
saying: Behold, O ye wicked and perverse generation,
How have ye forgotten the
tradition of your fathers; yea, how soon ye have forgotten the commandments of
God.
9 Do ye not remember that our father, Lehi, was brought out of Jerusalem by the
hand of God?
Do ye not remember that they were all led by him through the
wilderness?
10 And have ye forgotten so soon how many times he delivered our fathers,
Out of
the hands of their enemies, and preserved them,
From being destroyed, even by the
hands of their own brethren?
11 Yea, and if it had not been for his matchless power, and his mercy,
And his
long-suffering towards us, we should unavoidably have been cut off from the face
of the earth,
Long before this period of time, and perhaps been consigned to a
state of endless misery and woe.
12 Behold, now I say unto you that he commandeth you to repent; and except ye repent,
Ye can in nowise inherit the kingdom of God. But behold, this is not
all──
He has commanded you to repent or he will utterly destroy you,
From off the
face of the earth;
Yea, he will visit you in his anger,
And in his fierce anger
he will not turn away.
13 Behold, do ye not remember the words which he spake unto Lehi,
Saying that: Inasmuch as ye shall keep my commandments, ye shall prosper in the land?
And
again it is said that: Inasmuch as ye will not keep my commandments,
Ye shall be
cut off from the presence of the Lord.
14 Now I would that ye should remember,
That inasmuch as the Lamanites,
Have not
kept the commandments of God,
They have been cut off from the presence of the
Lord.
Now we see that the word of the Lord,
Has been verified in this thing;
The Lamanites have been cut off from his presence,
From the beginning of their
transgressions in the land.
15 Nevertheless I say unto you, that it shall be more tolerable for them,
In the
day of judgment than for you, if ye remain in your sins,
Yea, and even more
tolerable for them in this life than for you, except ye repent.
16 For there are many promises which are extended to the Lamanites;
For it is because of the traditions of their fathers,
That caused them to remain in their
state of ignorance;
Therefore the Lord will be merciful unto them,
And prolong
their existence in the land.
17 And at some period of time,
They will be brought to believe in his word,
And
to know of the incorrectness of the traditions of their fathers;
And many of
them will be saved, for the Lord will be merciful unto all who call on his name.
18 But behold, I say unto you that if ye persist in your wickedness,
That your
days shall not be prolonged in the land,
For the Lamanites shall be sent upon
you;
And if ye repent not,
They shall come in a time when you know not,
And ye
shall be visited with utter destruction;
And it shall be according to the fierce
anger of the Lord.
19 For he will not suffer you that ye shall live in your iniquities, to destroy
his people.
I say unto you, Nay; he would rather suffer that the Lamanites might
destroy all his people,
Who are called the people of Nephi, if it were possible
that they could fall into sins and transgressions,
After having had so much
light and so much knowledge given unto them of the Lord their God;
20 Yea, after having been such a highly favored people of the Lord;
Yea, after
having been favored,
Above every other nation, kindred, tongue, or people;
After
having had all things made known unto them,
According to their desires, and
their faith, and prayers,
Of that which has been, and which is, and which is to
come;
21 Having been visited by the Spirit of God; having conversed with angels,
And
having been spoken unto by the voice of the Lord;
And having the spirit of
prophecy,
And the spirit of revelation, and also many gifts,
The gift of
speaking with tongues, and the gift of preaching,
And the gift of the Holy
Ghost, and the gift of translation;
22 Yea, and after having been delivered of God out of the land of Jerusalem, by
the hand of the Lord;
Having been saved from famine, and from sickness, and all
manner of diseases of every kind;
And they having waxed strong in battle, that
they might not be destroyed;
Having been brought out of bondage time after time,
And having been kept and preserved until now;
And they have been prospered,
Until
they are rich in all manner of things──
23 And now behold I say unto you, that if this people,
Who have received so many
blessings from the hand of the Lord,
Should transgress contrary to the light and
knowledge which they do have,
I say unto you that if this be the case, that if
they should fall into transgression,
It would be far more tolerable for the
Lamanites than for them.
24 For behold, the promises of the Lord are extended to the Lamanites,
But they
are not unto you if ye transgress;
For has not the Lord expressly promised and
firmly decreed,
That if ye will rebel against him that ye shall utterly be
destroyed from off the face of the earth?
25 And now for this cause, that ye may not be destroyed, the Lord has sent his
angel,
To visit many of his people, declaring unto them,
That they must go forth
and cry mightily unto this people,
Saying: Repent ye, for the kingdom of heaven
is nigh at hand.
26 And not many days hence the Son of God shall come in his glory;
And his glory
shall be the glory of the Only Begotten of the Father,
Full of grace, equity,
and truth,
Full of patience, mercy, and long-suffering,
Quick to hear the cries
of his people and to answer their prayers.
27 And behold, he cometh to redeem those who will be baptized unto repentance,
Through faith on his name. Therefore, prepare ye the way of the Lord, for the time is at hand,
That all men shall reap a reward of their works, according to that which they have
been──
If they have been righteous they shall reap the salvation of their souls,
According to the power and deliverance of Jesus Christ;
And if they have been
evil,
They shall reap the damnation of their souls,
According to the power and
captivation of the devil.
29 Now behold, this is the voice of the angel, crying unto the people.
30 And now, my beloved brethren, for ye are my brethren, and ye ought to be
beloved,
And ye ought to bring forth works which are meet for repentance,
Seeing that your hearts have been grossly hardened against the word of God,
And seeing
that ye are a lost and a fallen people.
31 Now it came to pass that when I, Alma, had spoken these words,
Behold, the
people were wroth with me because I said unto them,
That they were a hard-hearted
and a stiffnecked people.
32 And also because I said unto them that they were a lost and a fallen people,
They were angry with me, and sought to lay their hands upon me, that they might
cast me into prison.
33 But it came to pass that the Lord did not suffer them,
That they should take
me at that time and cast me into prison.
34 And it came to pass that Amulek went and stood forth,
And began to preach
unto them also.
And now the words of Amulek are not written,
Nevertheless a
part of his words are written in this book.
![]()
ALMA 10
1 NOW these are the words which Amulek preached unto the people who were
in the land of Ammonihah, saying:
2 I am Amulek; I am the son of Giddonah, who was the son of Ishmael,
Who was a
descendant of Aminadi; and it was the same Aminadi,
Who interpreted the writing which was upon the wall of the temple,
Which was written by the finger of God.
3 And Aminadi was a descendant of Nephi,
Who was the son of Lehi, who came out
of the land of Jerusalem,
Who was a descendant of Manasseh, who was the son of
Joseph,
Who was sold into Egypt by the hands of his brethren.
4 And behold, I am also a man of no small reputation among all those who know
me;
Yea, and behold, I have many kindreds and friends,
And I have also acquired
much riches by the hand of my industry.
5 Nevertheless, after all this, I never have known much of the ways of the Lord,
And his mysteries and marvelous power. I said I never had known much of these
things;
But behold, I mistake, for I have seen much of his mysteries and
his marvelous power;
Yea, even in the preservation of the lives of this people.
6 Nevertheless, I did harden my heart,
For I was called many times and I would
not hear;
Therefore I knew concerning these things, yet I would not know;
Therefore I went on rebelling against God, in the wickedness of my heart,
Even
until the fourth day of this seventh month, which is in the tenth year of the
reign of the judges.
7 As I was journeying to see a very near kindred, behold an angel of the Lord
appeared unto me and said:
Amulek, return to thine own house, for thou shalt
feed a prophet of the Lord;
Yea, a holy man, who is a chosen man of God;
For he
has fasted many days because of the sins of this people,
And he is an hungered,
and thou shalt receive him into thy house and feed him,
And he shall bless thee
and thy house; and the blessing of the Lord shall rest upon thee and thy house.
8 And it came to pass that I obeyed the voice of the angel, and returned towards
my house.
And as I was going thither I found the man whom the angel said unto
me:
Thou shalt receive into thy house──and behold it was this same man,
Who has
been speaking unto you concerning the things of God.
9 And the angel said unto me he is a holy man;
Wherefore I know he is a holy man because it was said by an angel of God.
10 And again, I know that the things whereof he hath testified are true;
For
behold I say unto you, that as the Lord liveth,
Even so has he sent his angel,
To
make these things manifest unto me;
And this he has done while this Alma hath
dwelt at my house.
11 For behold, he hath blessed mine house, he hath blessed me, and my women,
And
my children, and my father and my kinsfolk; yea, even all my kindred hath he
blessed,
And the blessing of the Lord hath rested upon us according to the words
which he spake.
12 And now, when Amulek had spoken these words the people began to be
astonished,
Seeing there was more than one witness who testified of the things,
Whereof they were accused, and also which were to come,
According
to the spirit of prophecy which was in them.
13 Nevertheless, there were some among them,
Who thought to question them,
That
by their cunning devices,
They might catch them in their words,
That they might
find witness against them,
That they might deliver them to their judges,
That
they might be judged according to the law,
And that they might be slain or cast
into prison,
According to the crime which they could make appear or witness
against them.
14 Now it was those men who sought to destroy them, who were lawyers,
Who were
hired or appointed by the people,
To administer the law at their times of trials,
Or at the trials of the crimes of the people before the judges.
15 Now these lawyers were learned in all the arts and cunning of the people;
And
this was to enable them that they might be skilful in their profession.
16 And it came to pass that they began to question Amulek,
That thereby they
might make him cross his words,
Or contradict the words which he should speak.
17 Now they knew not that Amulek could know of their designs.
But it came to
pass as they began to question him, he perceived their thoughts,
And he said
unto them: O ye wicked and perverse generation,
Ye lawyers and hypocrites, for
ye are laying the foundations of the devil;
For ye are laying traps and snares
to catch the holy ones of God.
18 Ye are laying plans to pervert the ways of the righteous,
And to bring down
the wrath of God upon your heads,
Even to the utter destruction of this people.
19 Yea, well did Mosiah say, who was our last king,
When he was about to deliver
up the kingdom, having no one to confer it upon,
Causing that this people should
be governed by their own voices──
Yea, well did he say that if the time should
come,
That the voice of this people should choose iniquity,
That is, if the time
should come that this people,
Should fall into transgression, they would be ripe
for destruction.
20 And now I say unto you that well doth the Lord judge of your iniquities;
Well
doth he cry unto this people, by the voice of his angels:
Repent ye, repent, for
the kingdom of heaven is at hand.
21 Yea, well doth he cry, by the voice of his angels that:
I will come down
among my people, with equity and justice in my hands.
22 Yea, and I say unto you that if it were not for the prayers of the righteous,
Who are now in the land, that ye would even now be visited with utter
destruction;
Yet it would not be by flood, as were the people in the days of
Noah,
But it would be by famine, and by pestilence, and the sword.
23 But it is by the prayers of the righteous that ye are spared;
Now therefore,
if ye will cast out the righteous from among you,
Then will not the Lord stay his
hand;
But in his fierce anger he will come out against you;
Then ye shall be
smitten by famine, and by pestilence, and by the sword;
And the time is soon at
hand except ye repent.
24 And now it came to pass that the people were more angry with Amulek,
And they
cried out, saying: This man doth revile against our laws,
Which are just, and our
wise lawyers whom we have selected.
25 But Amulek stretched forth his hand, and cried the mightier unto them,
saying:
O ye wicked and perverse generation, why hath Satan got such great hold
upon your hearts?
Why will ye yield yourselves unto him that he may have power
over you, to blind your eyes,
That ye will not understand the words which are
spoken, according to their truth?
26 For behold, have I testified against your law? Ye do not understand;
Ye say
that I have spoken against your law, but I have not,
But I have spoken in favor of your law to your condemnation.
27 And now behold, I say unto you,
That the foundation of the destruction of
this people,
Is beginning to be laid by the unrighteousness of your lawyers and
your judges.
28 And now it came to pass that when Amulek had spoken these words the people
cried out against him,
Saying: Now we know that this man is a child of the
devil, for he hath lied unto us;
For he hath spoken against our law, and now he
says that he has not spoken against it.
29 And again, he has reviled against our lawyers and our judges.
30 And it came to pass that the lawyers put it into their hearts,
That they
should always remember these things against him.
31 And there was one among them whose name was Zeezrom.
Now he was foremost
to accuse Amulek and Alma,
He being one of the most expert among them,
Having
much business to do among the people.
32 Now the object of these lawyers was to get gain;
And they got gain according
to their employ.
![]()
ALMA 11
1 NOW it was in the law of Mosiah that every man who was a judge of the law,
Or
those who were appointed to be judges, should receive wages according to the
time,
Which they labored to judge those who were brought before them to be
judged.
2 Now if a man owed another, and he would not pay that which he did owe,
He was complained of to the judge; and the judge executed
authority,
And sent forth officers that the man should be
brought before him;
And he judged the man according to the law and the evidences which
were brought
against him,
And thus the man was compelled to pay that which he owed, or be
striped,
Or be cast out from among the people as a thief and a
robber.
3 And the judge received for his wages according to his time──
A senine of gold
for a day, or a senum of silver,
Which is equal to a senine of gold;
And this is according to the law which was given.
4 Now these are the names of the different pieces of their gold,
And of their silver, according to their value. And the names are given by the Nephites,
For
they did not reckon after the manner of the Jews who were at Jerusalem;
Neither
did they measure after the manner of the Jews;
But they altered their reckoning
and their measure,
According to the minds and the circumstances of the people,
In every generation, until the reign of the judges,
They having been established
by king Mosiah.
5 Now the reckoning is thus──
A senine of gold, a seon of gold, a shum of gold,
and a limnah of gold.
6 A senum of silver, an amnor of silver, an ezrum of silver, and an onti of
silver.
7 A senum of silver was equal to a senine of gold, and either for a measure of
barley,
And also for a measure of every kind of grain.
8 Now the amount of a seon of gold was twice the value of a senine.
9 And a shum of gold was twice the value of a seon. And a limnah of gold was the value of them all.
11 And an amnor of silver was as great as two senums. And an ezrum of silver was as great as four senums.
13 And an onti was as great as them all. Now this is the value of the lesser numbers of their reckoning──
15 A shiblon is half of a senum; therefore, a shiblon for half a measure of
barley.
16 And a shilum is a half of a shiblon. And a leah is the half of a shilum.
18 Now this is their number, according to their reckoning.
19 Now an antion of gold is equal to three shiblons.
20 Now, it was for the sole purpose to get gain,
Because they received their
wages according to their employ,
Therefore, they did stir up the people to riotings, and all manner of disturbances,
And wickedness, that they might have
more employ, that they might get money,
According to the suits which were brought
before them;
Therefore they did stir up the people against Alma and Amulek.
21 And this Zeezrom began to question Amulek, saying: Will ye answer me a few
questions,
Which I shall ask you? Now Zeezrom was a man who was an expert in
the devices of the devil,
That he might destroy that which was good; therefore, he
said unto Amulek:
Will ye answer the questions which I shall put unto you?
22 And Amulek said unto him: Yea,
If it be according to the Spirit of the Lord, which is in me;
For I shall say nothing which is contrary to the Spirit of the
Lord.
And Zeezrom said unto him: Behold, here are six onties of silver, and all
these will I give thee,
If thou wilt deny the existence of a Supreme Being. Now Amulek said: O thou child of hell,
Why tempt ye me? Knowest thou that the
righteous yieldeth to no such temptations?
24 Believest thou that there is no God? I say unto you, Nay,
Thou knowest that
there is a God,
But thou lovest that lucre more than him.
25 And now thou hast lied before God unto me; thou saidst unto me──
Behold these
six onties, which are of great worth, I will give unto thee──
When thou hadst it
in thy heart to retain them from me; and it was only thy desire,
That I should
deny the true and living God, that thou mightest have cause to destroy me.
And
now, for this great evil, thou shalt have thy reward.
26 And Zeezrom said unto him: Thou sayest there is a true and living God?
27 And Amulek said: Yea, there is a true and living God.
28 Now Zeezrom said: Is there more than one God?
29 And he answered, No.
30 Now Zeezrom said unto him again:
How knowest thou these things?
31 And he said: An angel hath made them known unto me.
32 And Zeezrom said again: Who is he that shall come? Is it the Son of God?
33 And he said unto him, Yea; and Zeezrom said again: Shall he save his people in their sins?
And Amulek
answered and said unto him: I say unto you, he shall not,
For it is impossible
for him to deny his word.
35 Now Zeezrom said unto the people: See that ye remember these things;
For he
said there is but one God; yet he saith that the Son of God shall come,
But he
shall not save his people──as though he had authority to command God.
36 Now Amulek saith again unto him: Behold thou hast lied,
For thou sayest that
I spake,
As though I had authority to command God,
Because I said he shall not
save his people in their sins.
37 And I say unto you again, that he cannot save them in their sins;
For I cannot
deny his word, and he hath said that no unclean thing can inherit the kingdom of
heaven;
Therefore, how can ye be saved, except ye inherit the kingdom of heaven? Therefore, ye cannot be saved in your sins.
38 Now Zeezrom saith again unto him: Is the Son of God the very Eternal Father?
39 And Amulek said unto him: Yea, he is the very Eternal Father of heaven,
And of
earth, and all things which in them are;
He is the beginning and the end,
The
first and the last;
40 And he shall come into the world to redeem his people;
And he shall take upon
him the transgressions of those who believe on his name;
And these are they that
shall have eternal life, and salvation cometh to none else.
41 Therefore the wicked remain as though there had been no redemption made,
Except it be the loosing of the bands of death; for behold,
The day cometh that
all shall rise from the dead,
And stand before God,
And be judged according to
their works.
42 Now, there is a death which is called a temporal death;
And the death of
Christ shall loose the bands of this temporal death,
That all shall be raised
from this temporal death.
43 The spirit and the body shall be reunited again in its perfect form;
Both limb and joint shall be restored to its proper frame,
Even as we now are at this time;
And we shall be brought to stand before God,
Knowing even as we know now, and have a bright
recollection of all our guilt.
44 Now, this restoration shall come to all, both old and young, both bond and
free, both male and female,
Both the wicked and the righteous; and even there
shall not so much as a hair of their heads be lost;
But every thing shall be
restored to its perfect frame, as it is now, or in the body,
And shall be
brought and be arraigned before the bar of Christ the Son, and God the Father,
And the Holy Spirit, which is one Eternal God, to be judged according to their
works,
Whether they be good or whether they be evil.
45 Now, behold, I have spoken unto you,
Concerning the death of the mortal body,
And also concerning the resurrection of the mortal body.
I say unto you that
this mortal body is raised to an immortal body,
That is from death, even from
the first death unto life, that they can die no more;
Their spirits uniting with
their bodies, never to be divided;
Thus the whole becoming spiritual and
immortal,
That they can no more see corruption.
46 Now, when Amulek had finished these words the people,
Began again to be
astonished, and also Zeezrom began to tremble.
And thus ended the words of Amulek, or this is all that I have written.
![]()
ALMA 12
1 NOW Alma, seeing that the words of Amulek had silenced Zeezrom,
For he beheld
that Amulek had caught him in his lying and deceiving to destroy him,
And seeing
that he began to tremble under a consciousness of his guilt,
He opened his mouth
and began to speak unto him,
And to establish the words of Amulek,
And to
explain things beyond,
Or to unfold the scriptures beyond that which Amulek had
done.
2 Now the words that Alma spake unto Zeezrom were heard by the people round
about;
For the multitude was great, and he spake on this wise:
3 Now Zeezrom, seeing that thou hast been taken in thy lying and craftiness,
For
thou hast not lied unto men only but thou hast lied unto God; for behold, he
knows all thy thoughts,
And thou seest that thy thoughts are made known unto us
by his Spirit;
4 And thou seest that we know that thy plan was a very subtle plan,
As to the
subtlety of the devil, for to lie and to deceive this people,
That thou mightest
set them against us, to revile us and to cast us out──
5 Now this was a plan of thine adversary, and he hath exercised his power in
thee.
Now I would that ye should remember that what I say unto thee I say unto
all.
6 And behold I say unto you all, This was a snare of the adversary,
Which he
has laid to catch this people,
That he might bring you into subjection unto him,
That he might encircle you about with his chains,
That he might chain you down
to everlasting destruction,
According to the power of his captivity.
7 Now when Alma had spoken these words,
Zeezrom began to tremble more
exceedingly,
For he was convinced more and more of the power of God;
And he was
also convinced that Alma and Amulek had a knowledge of him,
For he was convinced
that they knew the thoughts and intents of his heart;
For power was given unto
them that they might know of these things according to the spirit of prophecy.
8 And Zeezrom began to inquire of them diligently, that he might know more
concerning the kingdom of God.
And he said unto Alma: What does this mean which Amulek hath spoken,
Concerning the resurrection of the dead,
That all shall rise
from the dead, both the just and the unjust,
And are brought to stand before God
to be judged according to their works?
9 And now Alma began to expound these things unto him, saying:
It is given unto
many to know the mysteries of God;
Nevertheless they are laid under a strict
command,
That they shall not impart only according to the portion of his word,
Which he doth grant unto the children of men, according to the heed and
diligence which they give unto him.
10 And therefore, he that will harden his heart, the same receiveth the lesser
portion of the word;
And he that will not harden his heart, to him is given the
greater portion of the word,
Until it is given unto him to know the mysteries of
God until he know them in full.
11 And they that will harden their hearts, to them is given the lesser portion
of the word,
Until they know nothing concerning his mysteries; and then they are
taken captive by the devil,
And led by his will down to destruction. Now this is
what is meant by the chains of hell.
12 And Amulek hath spoken plainly concerning death,
And being raised from this
mortality to a state of immortality,
And being brought before the bar of God, to
be judged according to our works.
13 Then if our hearts have been hardened, yea, if we have hardened our hearts
against the word,
Insomuch that it has not been found in us, then will our state
be awful, for then we shall be condemned.
14 For our words will condemn us, yea, all our works will condemn us; we shall
not be found spotless;
And our thoughts will also condemn us; and in this awful
state we shall not dare to look up to our God;
And we would fain be glad if we
could command the rocks and the mountains,
To fall upon us to hide us from his
presence.
15 But this cannot be; we must come forth and stand before him in his glory,
And
in his power, and in his might, majesty, and dominion, and acknowledge to our
everlasting shame,
That all his judgments are just; that he is just in all his
works,
And that he is merciful unto the children of men,
And that he has all
power to save every man,
That believeth on his name and bringeth forth fruit meet
for repentance.
16 And now behold, I say unto you then cometh a death, even a second death,
which is a spiritual death;
Then is a time that whosoever dieth in his sins, as
to a temporal death, shall also die a spiritual death;
Yea, he shall die as to
things pertaining unto righteousness.
17 Then is the time when their torments shall be as a lake of fire and
brimstone,
Whose flame ascendeth up forever and ever; and then is the time
that they shall be chained down to an
everlasting destruction,
According to the power and captivity of Satan,
He having subjected them according to his will.
18 Then, I say unto you, they shall be,
As though there had been no redemption
made;
For they cannot be redeemed according to God's justice;
And they cannot
die, seeing there is no more corruption.
19 Now it came to pass that when Alma had made an end of speaking these words,
The people began to be more astonished. But there was one Antionah,
Who was a chief ruler among them came forth and
said unto him:
What is this that thou hast said,
That man should rise from the
dead and be changed,
From this mortal to an immortal state that the soul can
never die?
21 What does the scripture mean, which saith that God placed cherubim and a
flaming sword,
On the east of the garden of Eden, lest our first parents should
enter,
And partake of the fruit of the tree of life, and live forever?
And thus
we see that there was no possible chance that they should live forever.
22 Now Alma said unto him: This is the thing which I was about to explain.
Now
we see that Adam did fall by the partaking of the forbidden fruit,
According to
the word of God; and thus we see, that by his fall,
All mankind became a lost
and fallen people.
23 And now behold, I say unto you,
That if it had been possible for Adam,
To have
partaken of the fruit of the tree of life at that time,
There would have been no
death, and the word would have been void,
Making God a liar, for he said: If
thou eat thou shalt surely die.
24 And we see that death comes upon mankind,
Yea, the death which has been
spoken of by Amulek, which is the temporal death;
Nevertheless there was a space
granted unto man in which he might repent;
Therefore this life became a
probationary state; a time to prepare to meet God;
A time to prepare for that
endless state which has been spoken of by us,
Which is after the resurrection of
the dead.
25 Now, if it had not been for the plan of redemption,
Which was laid from the
foundation of the world, there could have been no resurrection of the dead;
But
there was a plan of redemption laid, which shall bring to pass,
The resurrection
of the dead, of which has been spoken.
26 And now behold, if it were possible,
That our first parents could have gone
forth,
And partaken of the tree of life they would have been forever miserable,
Having no preparatory state; and thus the plan of redemption would have been
frustrated,
And the word of God would have been void, taking none effect.
27 But behold, it was not so;
But it was appointed unto men that they must die;
And after death, they must come to judgment,
Even that same judgment of which we
have spoken, which is the end.
28 And after God had appointed that these things should come unto man,
Behold,
then he saw that it was expedient that man should know,
Concerning the things
whereof he had appointed unto them;
29 Therefore he sent angels to converse with them,
Who caused men to behold of
his glory.
30 And they began from that time forth to call on his name;
Therefore God
conversed with men, and made known unto them the plan of redemption,
Which had
been prepared from the foundation of the world; and this he made known unto them,
According to their faith and repentance and their holy works.
31 Wherefore, he gave commandments unto men,
They having first transgressed,
The
first commandments as to things which were temporal,
And becoming as Gods,
knowing good from evil, placing themselves in a state to act,
Or being placed in
a state to act according to their wills and pleasures,
Whether to do evil or to
do good──
32 Therefore God gave unto them commandments,
After having made known unto them
the plan of redemption,
That they should not do evil, the penalty thereof being
a second death,
Which was an everlasting death as to things pertaining unto
righteousness;
For on such the plan of redemption could have no power,
For the
works of justice could not be destroyed,
According to the supreme goodness of
God.
33 But God did call on men, in the name of his Son,
(this being the plan of
redemption which was laid) saying:
If ye will repent and harden not your hearts,
then will I have mercy upon you,
Through mine Only Begotten Son; therefore, whosoever repenteth, and hardeneth not his heart,
He shall have
claim on mercy through mine Only Begotten Son,
Unto a remission of his sins;
And
these shall enter into my rest.
35 And whosoever will harden his heart and will do iniquity,
Behold, I swear in
my wrath that he shall not enter into my rest.
36 And now, my brethren, behold I say unto you, that if ye will harden your
hearts,
Ye shall not enter into the rest of the Lord; therefore your iniquity provoketh him,
That he sendeth down his wrath upon you as in the first
provocation,
Yea, according to his word in the last provocation,
As well as the
first, to the everlasting destruction of your souls;
Therefore, according to his
word unto the last death, as well as the first.
37 And now, my brethren, seeing we know these things, and they are true,
Let us
repent, and harden not our hearts,
That we provoke not the Lord our God,
To pull
down his wrath upon us,
In these his second commandments which he has given unto
us;
But let us enter into the rest of God, which is prepared according to his
word.
![]()
ALMA 13
1 AND again, my brethren, I would cite your minds forward,
To the time when the
Lord God gave these commandments unto his children;
And I would that ye should
remember that the Lord God ordained priests, after his holy order,
Which was
after the order of his Son, to teach these things unto the people.
2 And those priests were ordained after the order of his Son,
In a manner that
thereby the people might know,
In what manner to look forward to his Son for
redemption.
3 And this is the manner after which they were ordained──being called,
And
prepared from the foundation of the world according to the foreknowledge of God,
On account of their exceeding faith and good works; in the first place being
left to choose good or evil;
Therefore they having chosen good, and exercising
exceedingly great faith,
Are called with a holy calling, yea, with that holy
calling,
Which was prepared with, and according to,
A preparatory redemption for
such.
4 And thus they have been called to this holy calling,
On account of their faith, while others would reject the Spirit of God,
On account of the hardness of their
hearts and blindness of their minds,
While, if it had not been for this they
might have had as great privilege as their brethren.
5 Or in fine, in the first place they were on the same standing with their
brethren;
Thus this holy calling being prepared from the foundation of the world,
For such as would not harden their hearts,
Being in and through the atonement of
the Only Begotten Son, who was prepared──
6 And thus being called by this holy calling, and ordained unto the high
priesthood of the holy order of God,
To teach his commandments unto the children
of men, that they also might enter into his rest──
7 This high priesthood being after the order of his Son, which order was from
the foundation of the world;
Or in other words, being without beginning of days
or end of years, being prepared,
From eternity to all eternity, according to his
foreknowledge of all things──
8 Now they were ordained after this manner──
Being called with a holy calling,
And ordained with a holy ordinance,
And taking upon them the high priesthood of
the holy order,
Which calling, and ordinance, and high priesthood, is without
beginning or end──
9 Thus they become high priests forever, after the order of the Son, the Only
Begotten of the Father,
Who is without beginning of days or end of years, who is
full of grace, equity, and truth.
And thus it is. Amen. Now, as I said concerning the holy order, or this high priesthood,
There were
many who were ordained and became high priests of God;
And it was on account of
their exceeding faith and repentance,
And their righteousness before God,
They
choosing to repent and work righteousness rather than to perish;
11 Therefore they were called after this holy order, and were sanctified,
And
their garments were washed white through the blood of the Lamb.
12 Now they, after being sanctified by the Holy Ghost,
Having their garments
made white,
Being pure and spotless before God,
Could not look upon sin save it
were with abhorrence;
And there were many, exceedingly great many,
Who were made
pure and entered into the rest of the Lord their God.
13 And now, my brethren, I would that ye should humble yourselves before God,
And bring forth fruit meet for repentance, that ye may also enter into that
rest.
14 Yea, humble yourselves even as the people in the days of Melchizedek,
Who was
also a high priest after this same order which I have spoken,
Who also took upon
him the high priesthood forever.
15 And it was this same Melchizedek to whom Abraham paid tithes;
Yea, even our
father Abraham paid tithes of one-tenth part of all he possessed.
16 Now these ordinances were given after this manner, that thereby the people
might look forward,
On the Son of God, it being a type of his order, or it being
his order,
And this that they might look forward to him,
For a remission of their
sins,
That they might enter into the rest of the Lord.
17 Now this Melchizedek was a king over the land of Salem;
And his people had waxed strong in iniquity and
abomination;
Yea, they had all gone astray; they were full of all manner of
wickednesses;
18 But Melchizedek having exercised mighty faith, and received the office of the
high priesthood,
According to the holy order of God, did preach repentance unto
his people.
And behold, they did repent; and Melchizedek did establish peace in
the land in his days;
Therefore he was called the prince of peace, for he was
the king of Salem; and he did reign under his father.
19 Now, there were many before him, and also there were many afterwards, but
none were greater;
Therefore, of him they have more particularly made mention.
20 Now I need not rehearse the matter;
What I have said may suffice.
Behold, the
scriptures are before you;
If ye will wrest them it shall be to your own
destruction.
21 And now it came to pass that when Alma had said these words unto them,
He
stretched forth his hand unto them and cried with a mighty voice, saying:
Now is
the time to repent, for the day of salvation draweth nigh;
22 Yea, and the voice of the Lord, by the mouth of angels,
Doth declare it unto
all nations;
Yea, doth declare it,
That they may have glad tidings of great joy;
Yea, and he doth sound these glad tidings among all his people,
Yea, even to
them that are scattered abroad upon the face of the earth; wherefore they
have come unto us.
23 And they are made known unto us in plain terms, that we may understand, that
we cannot err;
And this because of our being wanderers in a strange land;
therefore, we are
thus highly favored,
For we have these glad tidings declared
unto us in all parts of our vineyard.
24 For behold, angels are declaring it unto many at this time in our land;
And this is for the purpose of preparing the hearts of the children of men,
To
receive his word at the time of his coming in his glory.
25 And now we only wait to hear the joyful news,
Declared unto us by the mouth of
angels,
Of his coming; for the time cometh,
We know not how soon.
Would to God that it might be in my day;
But let it be sooner or later, in it I will rejoice.
26 And it shall be made known unto just and holy men,
By the mouth of angels, at
the time of his coming,
That the words of our fathers may be fulfilled,
According to that which they have spoken concerning him,
Which was according to
the spirit of prophecy which was in them.
27 And now, my brethren, I wish from the inmost part of my heart, yea,
With
great anxiety even unto pain, that ye would hearken unto my words,
And cast off
your sins, and not procrastinate the day of your repentance;
28 But that ye would humble yourselves before the Lord, and call on his holy
name,
And watch and pray continually, that ye may not be tempted above that
which ye can bear,
And thus be led by the Holy Spirit, becoming humble, meek,
submissive, patient,
Full of love and all long-suffering; having faith on the Lord;
Having a hope that ye shall receive eternal life;
Having the love of God always in your hearts,
That ye may be lifted up at the
last day and enter into his rest.
30 And may the Lord grant unto you repentance, that ye may not bring down his
wrath upon you,
That ye may not be bound down by the chains of hell, that ye may
not suffer the second death.
31 And Alma spake many more words unto the people, which are not written in this
book.
![]()
ALMA 14
1 AND it came to pass after he had made an end of speaking unto the people,
Many
of them did believe on his words,
And began to repent, and to search the
scriptures.
2 But the more part of them were desirous that they might destroy Alma and Amulek;
For they were angry with Alma, because of the plainness of his words
unto Zeezrom;
And they also said that Amulek had lied unto them, and had reviled
against their law,
And also against their lawyers and judges. And they were also angry with Alma and Amulek;
And because they had testified
so plainly against their wickedness, they sought to put them away privily.
4 But it came to pass that they did not; but they took them and bound them with
strong cords,
And took them before the chief judge of the land. And the people went forth and witnessed against them──
Testifying that they had
reviled against the law, and their lawyers and judges of the land,
And also of
all the people that were in the land; and also testified that there was but one
God,
And that he should send his Son among the people, but he should not save
them;
And many such things did the people testify against Alma and Amulek.
Now
this was done before the chief judge of the land.
6 And it came to pass that Zeezrom,
Was astonished at the words which had been
spoken;
And he also knew concerning the blindness of the minds,
Which he had
caused among the people by his lying words;
And his soul began to be harrowed up
under a consciousness of his own guilt;
Yea, he began to be encircled about by
the pains of hell.
7 And it came to pass that he began to cry unto the people, saying:
Behold, I am
guilty, and these men are spotless before God.
And he began to plead for them
from that time forth;
But they reviled him, saying:
Art thou also possessed with
the devil?
And they spit upon him, and cast him out from among them,
And also
all those who believed in the words which had been spoken by Alma and Amulek;
And they cast them out, and sent men to cast stones at them.
8 And they brought their wives and children together,
And whosoever believed or
had been taught,
To believe in the word of God,
They caused that they should be
cast into the fire;
And they also brought forth their records which contained
the holy scriptures,
And cast them into the fire also, that they might be burned
and destroyed by fire.
9 And it came to pass that they took Alma and Amulek, and carried them forth to
the place of martyrdom,
That they might witness the destruction of those who
were consumed by fire.
10 And when Amulek saw the pains of the women and children,
Who were consuming in
the fire, he also was pained;
And he said unto Alma:
How can we witness this
awful scene?
Therefore let us stretch forth our hands,
And exercise the power of
God which is in us, and save them from the flames.
11 But Alma said unto him: The Spirit constraineth me that I must not stretch
forth mine hand;
For behold the Lord receiveth them up unto himself, in glory;
And he doth suffer that they may do this thing,
Or that the people may do this
thing unto them, according to the hardness of their hearts,
That the judgments
which he shall exercise upon them in his wrath may be just;
And the blood of the
innocent shall stand as a witness against them,
Yea, and cry mightily against
them at the last day.
12 Now Amulek said unto Alma:
Behold, perhaps they will burn us also.
13 And Alma said: Be it according to the will of the Lord.
But, behold, our work
is not finished; therefore they burn us not.
14 Now it came to pass that when the bodies of those who had been cast into the
fire were consumed,
And also the records which were cast in with them,
The chief
judge of the land came and stood before Alma and Amulek, as they were bound;
And
he smote them with his hand upon their cheeks, and said unto them:
After what ye
have seen, will ye preach again unto this people,
That they shall be cast into a
lake of fire and brimstone?
15 Behold, ye see that ye had not power to save those,
Who had been cast into the
fire;
Neither has God saved them because they were of thy faith.
And the judge
smote them again upon their cheeks, and asked: What say ye for yourselves?
16 Now this judge was after the order and faith of Nehor, who slew Gideon.
17 And it came to pass that Alma and Amulek answered him nothing; and he smote
them again,
And delivered them to the officers to be cast into prison.
18 And when they had been cast into prison three days,
There came many lawyers,
and judges, and priests, and teachers,
Who were of the profession of Nehor; and
they came in unto the prison to see them,
And they questioned them about many
words; but they answered them nothing.
19 And it came to pass that the judge stood before them,
And said: Why do ye not
answer the words of this people?
Know ye not that I have power to deliver you up
unto the flames?
And he commanded them to speak; but they answered nothing.
20 And it came to pass that they departed,
And went their ways, but came again on
the morrow;
And the judge also smote them again on their cheeks.
And many others came
forth also, and smote them, saying:
Will ye stand again and judge this people,
and condemn our law?
If ye have such great power why do ye not deliver
yourselves?
21 And many such things did they say unto them,
Gnashing their teeth upon them,
And spitting upon them, and saying:
How shall we look when we are damned?
22 And many such things, yea, all manner of such things,
Did they say unto them; and thus they did mock them for many days.
And they did withhold food from them
that they might hunger, and water that they might thirst;
And they also did take
from them their clothes that they were naked;
And thus they were bound with
strong cords, and confined in prison.
23 And it came to pass after they had thus suffered for many days,
(and it was
on the twelfth day, in the tenth month,
In the tenth year of the reign of the
judges over the people of Nephi)
That the chief judge over the land of Ammonihah,
and many of their teachers,
And their lawyers went in unto the prison where Alma
and Amulek were bound with cords.
24 And the chief judge stood before them, and smote them again, and said unto
them:
If ye have the power of God deliver yourselves from these bands,
And then
we will believe that the Lord will destroy this people according to your words.
25 And it came to pass that they all went forth and smote them, saying the same
words,
Even until the last; and when the last had spoken unto them,
The power of
God was upon Alma and Amulek, and they rose and stood upon their feet.
26 And Alma cried, saying: How long shall we suffer these great afflictions, O
Lord?
O Lord, give us strength according to our faith which is in Christ, even
unto deliverance.
And they broke the cords with which they were bound; and when
the people saw this,
They began to flee, for the fear of destruction had come
upon them.
27 And it came to pass that so great was their fear,
That they fell to the earth, and did not obtain the outer door of the prison;
And the earth shook mightily,
and the walls of the prison were rent in twain,
So that they fell to the earth; and the chief judge,
And the lawyers, and priests, and teachers,
Who smote upon
Alma and Amulek, were slain by the fall thereof.
28 And Alma and Amulek came forth out of the prison, and they were not hurt;
For
the Lord had granted unto them power, according to their faith which was in
Christ.
And they straightway came forth out of the prison, and they were
loosed from their bands;
And the prison had fallen to the earth, and every soul within
the walls thereof,
Save it were Alma and Amulek, was slain; and they
straightway came forth to the city.
29 Now the people having heard a great noise,
Came running together by multitudes to know the cause of it;
And when they saw Alma and Amulek coming forth out of
the prison,
And the walls thereof had fallen to the earth, they were struck with
great fear,
And fled from the presence of Alma and Amulek even as a goat fleeth
with her young from two lions;
And thus they did flee from the presence of Alma
and Amulek.
![]()
ALMA 15
1 AND it came to pass that Alma and Amulek
Were commanded to depart out of that
city;
And they departed, and came out even into the land of Sidom;
And behold,
there they found all the people who had departed out of the land of Ammonihah,
`
Who had been cast out and stoned, because they believed in the words of Alma.
2 And they related unto them all that had happened unto their wives and
children,
And also concerning themselves, and of their power of deliverance.
3 And also Zeezrom lay sick at Sidom, with a burning fever,
Which was caused by
the great tribulations,
Of his mind on account of his wickedness,
For he supposed
that Alma and Amulek were no more;
And he supposed that they had been slain
because of his iniquity.
And this great sin, and his many other sins, did harrow
up his mind,
Until it did become exceedingly sore, having no deliverance;
Therefore he began to be scorched with a burning heat.
4 Now, when he heard that Alma and Amulek were in the land of Sidom,
His heart
began to take courage; and he sent a message immediately unto them,
Desiring
them to come unto him. And it came to pass that they went unto him immediately,
Obeying the message which he
had sent unto them; and they went in unto the house unto Zeezrom;
And they found
him upon his bed, sick, being very low with a burning fever;
And his mind also
was exceedingly sore because of his iniquities;
And when he sawthem he
stretched forth his hand,
And besought them that they would heal him. And it came to pass that Alma said unto him,
Taking him by the hand: Believest
thou in the power of Christ unto salvation?
7 And he answered and said: Yea, I believe all the words that thou hast taught.
8 And Alma said: If thou believest in the redemption of Christ thou canst be
healed.
9 And he said: Yea, I believe according to thy words.
10 And then Alma cried unto the Lord, saying: O Lord our God,
Have mercy on this
man, and heal him according to his faith which is in Christ.
11 And when Alma had said these words, Zeezrom leaped upon his feet, and began
to walk;
And this was done to the great astonishment of all the people;
And the
knowledge of this went forth throughout all the land of Sidom.
12 And Alma baptized Zeezrom unto the Lord; and he began from that time forth to
preach unto the people.
13 And Alma established a church in the land of Sidom, and consecrated priests
and teachers in the land,
To baptize unto the Lord whosoever were desirous to be
baptized.
14 And it came to pass that they were many;
For they did flock in from all the
region round about Sidom, and were baptized.
15 But as to the people that were in the land of Ammonihah, they yet remained a
hard-hearted,
And a stiffnecked people; and they repented not of their sins,
Ascribing all the power of Alma and Amulek to the devil;
For they were of the
profession of Nehor,
And did not believe in the repentance of their sins.
16 And it came to pass that Alma and Amulek,
Amulek having forsaken all his
gold, and silver,
And his precious things, which were in the land of Ammonihah,
for the word of God,
He being rejected by those who were once his friends and
also by his father and his kindred;
17 Therefore, after Alma having established the church at Sidom,
Seeing a great
check, yea, seeing that the people,
Were checked as to the pride of their hearts,
And began to humble themselves before God,
And began to assemble themselves together at their sanctuaries,
To worship God before the altar, watching and
praying continually,
That they might be delivered from Satan, and from death,
and from destruction──
18 Now as I said, Alma having seen all these things, therefore he took Amulek,
And came over to the land of Zarahemla, and took him to his own house,
And did
administer unto him in his tribulations, and strengthened him in the Lord.
19 And thus ended the tenth year of the reign of the judges over the people of
Nephi.
![]()
ALMA 16
1 AND it came to pass in the eleventh year of the reign of the judges over the
people of Nephi,
On the fifth day of the second month, there having been much
peace in the land of Zarahemla,
There having been no wars nor contentions for a certain number of years,
Even until the fifth day of the second month in the
eleventh year,
There was a cry of war heard throughout the land.
2 For behold, the armies of the Lamanites,
Had come in upon the wilderness side,
Into the borders of the land,
Even into the city of Ammonihah,
And began to slay
the people and destroy the city.
3 And now it came to pass, before the Nephites could raise a sufficient army,
To
drive them out of the land, they had destroyed the people who were in the city
of Ammonihah,
And also some around the borders of Noah, and taken others captive
into the wilderness.
4 Now it came to pass that the Nephites were desirous to obtain those,
Who had
been carried away captive into the wilderness.
5 Therefore, he that had been appointed chief captain over the armies of the
Nephites,
(and his name was Zoram, and he had two sons, Lehi and Aha)──now Zoram
and his two sons,
Knowing that Alma was high priest over the church, and having
heard that he had the spirit of prophecy,
Therefore they went unto him and
desired of him to know whither the Lord would,
That they should go into the
wilderness in search of their brethren,
Who had been taken captive by the
Lamanites.
6 And it came to pass that Alma inquired of the Lord concerning the matter.
And
Alma returned and said unto them:
Behold, the Lamanites will cross the river Sidon in the south wilderness,
Away up beyond the borders of the land of Manti.
And behold there shall ye meet them, on the east of the river Sidon,
And there
the Lord will deliver unto thee thy brethren who have been taken captive by the
Lamanites.
7 And it came to pass that Zoram and his sons crossed over the river Sidon, with
their armies,
And marched away beyond the borders of Manti into the south
wilderness,
Which was on the east side of the river Sidon.
8 And they came upon the armies of the Lamanites,
And the Lamanites were
scattered and driven into the wilderness;
And they took their brethren who had
been taken captive by the Lamanites,
And there was not one soul of them had been
lost that were taken captive.
And they were brought by their brethren to possess
their own lands.
9 And thus ended the eleventh year of the judges,
The Lamanites having been
driven out of the land,
And the people of Ammonihah were destroyed;
Yea, every
living soul of the Ammonihahites was destroyed,
And also their great city, which
they said God could not destroy, because of its greatness.
10 But behold, in one day it was left desolate;
and the carcases were mangled by
dogs and wild beasts of the wilderness.
11 Nevertheless, after many days their dead bodies were heaped up upon the face
of the earth,
And they were covered with a shallow covering. And now so great
was the scent thereof,
That the people did not go in to possess the land of Ammonihah for many years.
And it was called Desolation of Nehors; for they were of the profession of Nehor,
Who were slain; and their lands remained desolate.
12 And the Lamanites did not come again to war against the Nephites,
Until the
fourteenth year of the reign of the judges over the people of Nephi.
And thus
for three years did the people of Nephi have continual peace in all the land.
13 And Alma and Amulek went forth preaching repentance to the people in their
temples,
And in their sanctuaries, and also in their synagogues,
Which were
built after the manner of the Jews.
14 And as many as would hear their words,
Unto them they did impart the word of
God,
Without any respect of persons, continually.
15 And thus did Alma and Amulek go forth,
And also many more who had been chosen
for the work,
To preach the word throughout all the land,
And the establishment
of the church became general throughout the land,
In all the region round about,
among all the people of the Nephites.
16 And there was no inequality among them; the Lord did pour out his Spirit,
On
all the face of the land to prepare the minds of the children of men,
Or to
prepare their hearts to receive the word which should be taught among them at
the time of his coming──
17 That they might not be hardened against the word, that they might not be
unbelieving,
And go on to destruction, but that they might receive the word with
joy,
And as a branch be grafted into the true vine,
That they might enter into
the rest of the Lord their God.
18 Now those priests who did go forth among the people did preach against all
lyings,
And deceivings, and envyings, and strifes, and malice, and revilings,
And stealing, robbing, plundering, murdering, committing adultery,
And all
manner of lasciviousness,
Crying that these things ought not so to be──
19 Holding forth things which must shortly come;
Yea, holding forth the coming
of the Son of God,
His sufferings and death, and also the resurrection of the
dead.
20 And many of the people did inquire concerning the place where the Son of God
should come;
And they were taught that he would appear unto them after his
resurrection;
And this the people did hear with great joy and gladness.
21 And now after the church had been established,
Throughout all the land──
Having
got the victory over the devil,
And the word of God being preached in its purity in all the land,
And the Lord pouring out his blessings upon the people──
Thus
ended the fourteenth year of the reign of the judges over the people of Nephi.
![]()
ALMA 17
1 AND now it came to pass that as Alma was journeying from the land of Gideon
southward,
Away to the land of Manti, behold, to his astonishment,
He met with
the sons of Mosiah journeying towards the land of Zarahemla.
2 Now these sons of Mosiah were with Alma at the time the angel first
appeared unto him;
Therefore Alma did rejoice exceedingly to see his brethren;
And
what added more to his joy, they were still his brethren in the Lord;
Yea, and they had
waxed strong in the knowledge of the truth; for they were men of a sound
understanding,
And they had searched the scriptures diligently, that they might
know the word of God.
3 But this is not all; they had given themselves to much prayer, and fasting;
Therefore they had the spirit of prophecy, and the spirit of revelation,
And
when they taught, they taught with power and authority of God.
4 And they had been teaching the word of God for the space of fourteen years,
Among the Lamanites, having had much success in bringing many to the knowledge
of the truth;
Yea, by the power of their words many were brought before the
altar of God,
To call on his name and confess their sins before him.
5 Now these are the circumstances which attended them in their journeyings,
For
they had many afflictions; they did suffer much, both in body and in mind,
Such
as hunger, thirst and fatigue, and also much labor in the spirit.
6 Now these were their journeyings:
Having taken leave of their father, Mosiah, in the first year of the judges;
Having refused the kingdom which their father
was desirous to confer upon them,
And also this was the minds of the people; nevertheless they departed out of the land of Zarahemla,
And took their
swords, and their spears, and their bows, and their arrows, and their slings;
And this they did that they might provide food for themselves while in the
wilderness.
8 And thus they departed into the wilderness with their numbers which they had
selected,
To go up to the land of Nephi, to preach the word of God unto the
Lamanites.
9 And it came to pass that they journeyed many days in the wilderness,
And they
fasted much and prayed much,
That the Lord would grant unto them,
A portion of his Spirit to go with them, and abide with them,
That they might be an instrument in
the hands of God to bring,
If it were possible, their brethren, the Lamanites,
to the knowledge of the truth,
` To the knowledge of the baseness of the
traditions of their fathers, which were not correct.
10 And it came to pass that the Lord did visit them with his Spirit, and said
unto them:
Be comforted. And they were comforted. And the Lord said unto them also:
Go forth among the Lamanites, thy brethren, and establish my word;
Yet ye shall be patient in long-suffering and
afflictions,
That ye may show forth good examples unto them in me,
And I will
make an instrument of thee,
In my hands unto the salvation of many souls.
12 And it came to pass that the hearts of the sons of Mosiah,
And also those who
were with them, took courage to go forth unto the Lamanites,
To declare unto them
the word of God. And it came to pass that when they had arrived,
In the borders of the land of the
Lamanites, that they separated themselves,
And departed one from another, trusting in the Lord,
That they should meet again at the close of their harvest;
For they supposed that great was the work which they had undertaken.
14 And assuredly it was great, for they had undertaken to preach the word of God,
To a wild and a hardened and a ferocious people; a people who delighted in murdering
the Nephites,
And robbing and plundering them; and their hearts were
set upon riches,
Or upon gold and silver, and precious stones;
Yet they sought
to obtain these things,
By murdering and plundering,
That they might not labor
for them with their own hands.
15 Thus they were a very indolent people, many of whom did worship idols,
And
the curse of God had fallen upon them because of the traditions of their
fathers;
Notwithstanding the promises of the Lord were extended unto them on the
conditions of repentance.
16 Therefore, this was the cause for which the sons of Mosiah had undertaken the
work,
That perhaps they might bring them unto repentance;
That perhaps they
might bring them to know of the plan of redemption.
17 Therefore they separated themselves one from another, and went forth among
them,
Every man alone, according to the word and power of God which was given
unto him.
18 Now Ammon being the chief among them, or rather he did administer unto them,
And he departed from them, after having blessed them according to their several
stations,
Having imparted the word of God unto them, or administered unto them
before his departure;
And thus they took their several journeys throughout the
land.
19 And Ammon went to the land of Ishmael,
The land being called after the sons
of Ishmael, who also became Lamanites.
20 And as Ammon entered the land of Ishmael, the Lamanites took him and bound
him,
As was their custom to bind all the Nephites who fell into their hands,
And
carry them before the king;
And thus it was left to the pleasure of the king to
slay them,
Or to retain them in captivity, or to cast them into prison,
Or to
cast them out of his land, according to his will and pleasure.
21 And thus Ammon was carried before the king who was over the land of Ishmael;
And his name was Lamoni, and he was a descendant of Ishmael.
22 And the king inquired of Ammon if it were his desire,
To dwell in the land
among the Lamanites, or among his people.
23 And Ammon said unto him: Yea, I desire to dwell among this people for a time;
Yea, and perhaps until the day I die. And it came to pass that king Lamoni,
Was much pleased with Ammon, and caused
that his bands should be loosed;
And he would that Ammon should take one of his
daughters to wife.
25 But Ammon said unto him: Nay, but I will be thy servant.
Therefore Ammon
became a servant to king Lamoni.
And it came to pass that he was set among other
servants,
To watch the flocks of Lamoni, according to the custom of the
Lamanites.
26 And after he had been in the service of the king three days,
As he was with
the Lamanitish servants,
Going forth with their flocks,
To the place of water,
which was called the water of Sebus,
And all the Lamanites drive their flocks
hither, that they may have water──
27 Therefore, as Ammon and the servants of the king were driving forth their
flocks to this place of water,
Behold, a certain number of the Lamanites, who
had been with their flocks to water,
Stood and scattered the flocks of Ammon and
the servants of the king,
And they scattered them insomuch that they fled many
ways.
28 Now the servants of the king began to murmur,
Saying: Now the king will slay us as he has our brethren,
Because their flocks were scattered by the wickedness
of these men.
And they began to weep exceedingly, saying: Behold, our flocks are
scattered already.
29 Now they wept because of the fear of being slain.
Now when Ammon saw this his
heart was swollen within him with joy;
For, said he, I will show forth my power unto these my fellow-servants,
Or the power which is in me, in restoring these flocks unto the
king,
That I may win the hearts of these my fellow-servants,
That I may lead them to believe in my words.
30 And now, these were the thoughts of Ammon,
When he saw the afflictions of those whom he termed to be his brethren.
31 And it came to pass that he flattered them by his words, saying:
My brethren,
be of good cheer and let us go in search of the flocks,
And we will gather them
together and bring them back unto the place of water;
And thus we will preserve
the flocks unto the king and he will not slay us.
32 And it came to pass that they went in search of the flocks,
And they did
follow Ammon, and they rushed forth,
With much swiftness and did head the flocks
of the king,
And did gather them together again to the place of water.
33 And those men again stood to scatter their flocks;
But Ammon said unto his
brethren:
Encircle the flocks round about that they flee not;
And I go and
contend with these men who do scatter our flocks.
34 Therefore, they did as Ammon commanded them,
And he went forth and stood to
contend with those,
Who stood by the waters of Sebus;
And they were in number not
a few.
35 Therefore they did not fear Ammon,
For they supposed that one of their men,
Could slay him according to their pleasure,
For they knew not that the Lord had
promised Mosiah,
That he would deliver his sons out of their hands;
Neither did
they know anything concerning the Lord;
Therefore they delighted in the
destruction of their brethren;
And for this cause they stood to scatter the
flocks of the king.
36 But Ammon stood forth and began to cast stones at them with his sling;
Yea,
with mighty power he did sling stones amongst them;
And thus he slew a certain
number of them,
Insomuch that they began to be astonished at his power;
Nevertheless they were angry because of the slain of their brethren,
And they
were determined that he should fall; therefore, seeing that they could not,
Hit
him with their stones, they came forth with clubs to slay him.
37 But behold, every man that lifted his club to smite Ammon,
He smote off their
arms with his sword;
For he did withstand their blows,
By smiting their arms with
the edge of his sword,
Insomuch that they began to be astonished, and began to
flee before him;
Yea, and they were not few in number; and he caused them to
flee by the strength of his arm.
38 Now six of them had fallen by the sling, but he slew none save it were their
leader with his sword;
And he smote off as many of their arms as were lifted
against him, and they were not a few.
39 And when he had driven them afar off, he returned and they watered their
flocks,
And returned them to the pasture of the king,
And then went in unto the
king, bearing the arms,
Which had been smitten off by the sword of Ammon, of
those who sought to slay him;
And they were carried in unto the king for a
testimony of the things which they had done.
![]()
ALMA 18
1 AND it came to pass that king Lamoni caused,
That his servants should stand
forth and testify,
To all the things which they had seen concerning the matter.
2 And when they had all testified to the things which they had seen,
And he had
learned of the faithfulness of Ammon in preserving his flocks,
And also of his
great power in contending against those who sought to slay him,
He was
astonished exceedingly, and said: Surely, this is more than a man.
Behold, is
not this the Great Spirit who doth send such great punishments,
Upon this people,
because of their murders?
3 And they answered the king,
And said: Whether he be the Great Spirit or a man,
we know not;
But this much we do know, that he cannot be slain by the enemies of
the king;
Neither can they scatter the king's flocks when he is with us,
Because
of his expertness and great strength;
Therefore, we know that he is a friend to
the king.
And now, O king, we do not believe that a man has such great power,
For we know he cannot be slain. And now, when the king heard these words,
He said unto them: Now I know that
it is the Great Spirit;
And he has come down at this time to preserve your
lives,
That I might not slay you as I did your brethren.
Now this is the Great
Spirit of whom our fathers have spoken.
5 Now this was the tradition of Lamoni, which he had received from his father,
That there was a Great Spirit. Notwithstanding they believed in a Great Spirit,
They supposed that whatsoever they did was right; nevertheless, Lamoni began to
fear exceedingly,
With fear lest he had done wrong in slaying his servants; for he
had slain many of them,
Because their brethren had scattered their flocks at the place of water;
And thus, because they had had their flocks scattered they were
slain.
7 Now it was the practice of these Lamanites to stand by the waters of Sebus,
To
scatter the flocks of the people, that thereby they might drive away many,
That
were scattered unto their own land, it being a practice of plunder among them.
8 And it came to pass that king Lamoni inquired of his servants, saying:
Where
is this man that has such great power?
9 And they said unto him:
Behold, he is feeding thy horses.
Now the king had
commanded his servants,
Previous to the time of the watering of their flocks,
That they should prepare his horses and chariots,
And conduct him forth to the
land of Nephi;
For there had been a great feast appointed at the land of Nephi,
By the father of Lamoni, who was king over all the land.
10 Now when king Lamoni heard that Ammon was preparing his horses and his
chariots,
He was more astonished, because of the faithfulness of Ammon, saying:
Surely there has not been any servant among all my servants,
That has been so
faithful as this man;
For even he doth remember all my commandments to execute
them.
11 Now I surely know that this is the Great Spirit, and I would desire him,
That
he come in unto me, but I durst not. And it came to pass,
that when Ammon had made ready the horses and
the chariots,
For the king and his servants,
he went in unto the king, and he saw,
That the countenance of the king was changed;
Therefore he was about to return
out of his presence.
13 And one of the king's servants said unto him, Rabbanah, which is,
Being
interpreted, powerful or great king, considering their kings to be powerful;
And
thus he said unto him: Rabbanah, the king desireth thee to stay.
14 Therefore Ammon turned himself unto the king, and said unto him:
What wilt
thou that I should do for thee, O king?
And the king answered him not for the
space of an hour,
According to their time, for he knew not what he should say
unto him.
15 And it came to pass that Ammon said unto him again: What desirest thou of me?
But the king answered him not. And it came to pass that Ammon, being filled with the Spirit of God,
Therefore he perceived the thoughts of the king. And he said unto him:
Is it
because thou hast heard that I defended thy servants and thy flocks,
And slew
seven of their brethren with the sling and with the sword,
And smote off the
arms of others,
In order to defend thy flocks and thy servants;
Behold, is it this that causeth thy marvelings?
17 I say unto you, what is it, that thy marvelings are so great?
Behold, I am a
man, and am thy servant; therefore, whatsoever thou desirest,
Which is right, that will I do.
18 Now when the king had heard these words,
He marveled again, for he beheld
that Ammon could discern his thoughts;
But notwithstanding this, king Lamoni did
open his mouth, and he said unto him:
Who art thou? Art thou that Great Spirit, who
knows all things?
19 Ammon answered and said unto him: I am not.
20 And the king said: How knowest thou the thoughts of my heart?
Thou mayest
speak boldly, and tell me concerning these things?
And also tell me by what
power ye slew and smote off the arms of my brethren,
That scattered my flocks──and now, if thou wilt tell me concerning these things,
Whatsoever that thou
desirest I will give unto thee; and if it were needed,
I would guard thee with
my armies; but I know that thou art more powerful than all they;
Nevertheless, whatsoever thou desirest of me I will grant it unto thee.
22 Now Ammon being wise, yet harmless,
He said unto Lamoni: Wilt thou hearken
unto my words,
If I tell thee by what power I do these things?
And this is the
thing that I desire of thee.
23 And the king answered him, and said:
Yea, I will believe all thy words.
And
thus he was caught with guile.
24 And Ammon began to speak unto him with boldness,
And said unto him: Believest
thou that there is a God?
25 And he answered, and said unto him: I do not know what that meaneth.
26 And then Ammon said: Believest thou that there is a Great Spirit?
27 And he said, Yea. And Ammon said: This is God.
And Ammon said unto him again:
Believest thou
that this Great Spirit, who is God,
Created all things which are in heaven and
in the earth?
29 And he said: Yea, I believe that he created all things which are in the
earth;
But I do not know the heavens. And Ammon said unto him: The heavens is
a place where God dwells,
And all his holy angels; and king Lamoni said: Is it above the earth?
32 And Ammon said: Yea, and he looketh down upon all the children of men;
And he
knows all the thoughts and intents of the heart;
For by his hand were they all
created from the beginning.
33 And king Lamoni said: I believe all these things which thou hast spoken.
Art
thou sent from God? Ammon said unto him: I am a man;
And man in the beginning was created after
the image of God.
And I am called by his Holy Spirit to teach these things unto
this people,
That they may be brought to a knowledge of that which is just and
true;
35 And a portion of that Spirit dwelleth in me, which giveth me knowledge,
And
also power according to my faith and desires which are in God.
36 Now when Ammon had said these words, he began at the creation of the world,
And also the creation of Adam, and told him all the things concerning the fall
of man,
And rehearsed and laid before him the records and the holy scriptures of
the people,
Which had been spoken by the prophets, even down to the time
that their father, Lehi, left Jerusalem.
37 And he also rehearsed unto them (for it was unto the king and to his
servants)
All the journeyings of their fathers in the wilderness,
And all their
sufferings with hunger and thirst, and their travail, and so forth.
38 And he also rehearsed unto them concerning the rebellions of Laman and
Lemuel,
And the sons of Ishmael, yea, all their rebellions did he relate
unto them;
And he expounded unto them all the records and scriptures,
From the time
that Lehi left Jerusalem down to the present time.
39 But this is not all; for he expounded unto them the plan of redemption,
Which
was prepared from the foundation of the world;
And he also made known unto them concerning the coming of Christ,
And all the works of the Lord did he make known
unto them.
40 And it came to pass that after he had said all these things,
And expounded
them to the king, that the king believed all his words.
41 And he began to cry unto the Lord, saying: O Lord, have mercy;
According to
thy abundant mercy which thou hast had,
Upon the people of Nephi, have upon me,
and my people.
42 And now, when he had said this, he fell unto the earth, as if he were dead.
43 And it came to pass that his servants took him and carried him in unto his
wife,
And laid him upon a bed; and he lay as if he were dead for the space of
two days and two nights;
And his wife, and his sons, and his daughters mourned
over him,
After the manner of the Lamanites, greatly lamenting his loss.
![]()
ALMA 19
1 AND it came to pass that after two days and two nights they were about to take
his body,
And lay it in a sepulcher, which they had made for the purpose of
burying their dead.
2 Now the queen having heard of the fame of Ammon, therefore she sent,
And
desired that he should come in unto her.
3 And it came to pass that Ammon did as he was commanded,
And went in unto the
queen, and desired to know what she would that he should do.
4 And she said unto him: The servants of my husband have made it known unto me,
That thou art a prophet of a holy God, and that thou hast power,
To do many
mighty works in his name;
5 Therefore, if this is the case,
I would that ye should go in and see my
husband,
For he has been laid upon his bed for the space of two days and two
nights;
And some say that he is not dead, but others say that he is dead and
that he stinketh,
And that he ought to be placed in the sepulcher; but as for
myself, to me he doth not stink.
6 Now, this was what Ammon desired, for he knew that king Lamoni was under
the power of God;
He knew that the dark veil of unbelief was being cast
away from his mind,
And the light which did light up his mind, which was the light of
the glory of God,
Which was a marvelous light of his goodness──yea, this light
had infused such joy into his soul,
The cloud of darkness having been dispelled, and that the light of everlasting life was lit up in his soul,
Yea, he knew that
this had overcome his natural frame, and he was carried away in God-
7 Therefore, what the queen desired of him was his only desire.
Therefore,
he went in to see the king,
According as the queen had desired him;
And he saw
the king, and he knew that he was not dead.
8 And he said unto the queen: He is not dead, but he sleepeth in God,
And
on the morrow he shall rise again; therefore bury him not.
9 And Ammon said unto her: Believest thou this?
And she said unto him:
I have
had no witness save thy word,
And the word of our servants; nevertheless,
I
believe that it shall be according as thou hast said.
10 And Ammon said unto her: Blessed art thou because of thy exceeding faith;
I
say unto thee, woman, there has not been such great faith among all the people
of the Nephites.
11 And it came to pass that she watched over the bed of her husband, from that
time,
Even until that time on the morrow which Ammon had appointed that he should
rise.
12 And it came to pass that he arose, according to the words of Ammon;
And as he
arose, he stretched forth his hand unto the woman,
And said: Blessed be the name
of God, and blessed art thou.
13 For as sure as thou livest, behold, I have seen my Redeemer;
And he shall
come forth, and be born of a woman,
And he shall redeem all mankind who believe
on his name.
Now, when he had said these words, his heart was swollen within
him,
And he sunk again with joy; and the queen also sunk down, being overpowered
by the Spirit.
14 Now Ammon seeing the Spirit of the Lord poured out according to his prayers
upon the Lamanites, his brethren,
Who had been the cause of so much mourning
among the Nephites, or among all the people of God,
Because of their iniquities
and their traditions, he fell upon his knees,
And began to pour out his soul in
prayer and thanksgiving,
To God for what he had done for his brethren;
And he was
also overpowered with joy;
And thus they all three had sunk to the earth.
15 Now, when the servants of the king had seen that they had fallen,
They also
began to cry unto God, for the fear of the Lord had come upon them also,
For it
was they who had stood before the king and testified unto him concerning the
great power of Ammon.
16 And it came to pass that they did call on the name of the Lord, in their
might,
Even until they had all fallen to the earth,
Save it were one of the Lamanitish women,
Whose name was Abish, she having been converted unto the Lord,
For many years, on account of a remarkable vision of her father──
17 Thus, having been converted to the Lord, and never having made it known,
Therefore, when she saw that all the servants of Lamoni had fallen to the earth,
And also her mistress, the queen, and the king, and Ammon lay prostrate upon the
earth,
She knew that it was the power of God; and supposing that this
opportunity,
By making known unto the people what had happened among them,
That
by beholding this scene it would cause them to believe in the power of God,
Therefore she ran forth from house to house, making it known unto the people.
18 And they began to assemble themselves together unto the house of the king.
And there came a multitude, and to their astonishment, they beheld the king,
And
the queen, and their servants prostrate upon the earth,
And they all lay there as though they were dead;
And they also saw Ammon,
And behold, he was a Nephite.
19 And now the people began to murmur,
Among themselves; some saying that it was
a great evil,
That had come upon them, or upon the king and his house,
Because he
had suffered that the Nephite should remain in the land.
20 But others rebuked them, saying: The king hath brought this evil upon his
house,
Because he slew his servants who had had their flocks scattered at the
waters of Sebus.
21 And they were also rebuked by those men who had stood at the waters of Sebus,
And scattered the flocks which belonged to the king,
For they were angry with
Ammon because of the number which he had slain,
Of their brethren at the waters
of Sebus, while defending the flocks of the king.
22 Now, one of them, whose brother had been slain with the sword of Ammon,
Being
exceedingly angry with Ammon, drew his sword and went forth,
That he might let it
fall upon Ammon, to slay him;
And as he lifted the sword to smite him, behold,
he fell dead.
23 Now we see that Ammon could not be slain, for the Lord had said unto Mosiah,
his father:
I will spare him, and it shall be unto him according to thy
faith──
Therefore, Mosiah trusted him unto the Lord.
24 And it came to pass that when the multitude beheld,
That the man had fallen
dead, who lifted the sword to slay Ammon,
Fear came upon them all, and they
durst not put forth their hands to touch him,
Or any of those who had fallen; and
they began to marvel again among themselves,
What could be the cause of this
great power, or what all these things could mean.
25 And it came to pass that there were many among them,
Who said that Ammon was
the Great Spirit,
And others said he was sent by the Great Spirit.
26 But others rebuked them all, saying that he was a monster,
Who had been sent
from the Nephites to torment them; and there were some who said,
That Ammon was sent by the Great Spirit to
afflict them because of their iniquities;
And that it was the Great Spirit that
had always attended the Nephites,
Who had ever delivered them out of their
hands;
And they said that it was this Great Spirit,
Who had destroyed so many of
their brethren, the Lamanites.
28 And thus the contention began to be exceedingly sharp among them; and while
they were thus contending,
The woman servant who had caused the multitude to be
gathered together came,
And when she saw the contention which was among the
multitude,
She was exceedingly sorrowful, even unto tears.
29 And it came to pass that she went and took the queen by the hand,
That
perhaps she might raise her from the ground; and as soon as she touched her hand,
She arose and stood upon her feet, and cried with a loud voice, saying:
O
blessed Jesus, who has saved me from an awful hell!
O blessed God, have mercy on
this people!
30 And when she had said this, she clasped her hands,
Being filled with joy, speaking many words,
Which were not understood; and when she had done this,
She
took the king, Lamoni, by the hand, and behold he arose and stood upon his feet.
31 And he, immediately, seeing the contention among his people, went forth and
began to rebuke them,
And to teach them the words which he had heard from the
mouth of Ammon;
And as many as heard his words believed, and were converted unto
the Lord.
32 But there were many among them who would not hear his words;
Therefore they
went their way. And it came to pass,
That when Ammon arose he also administered unto them,
And
also did all the servants of Lamoni;
And they did all declare unto the people
the selfsame thing──
That their hearts had been changed;
That they had no more
desire to do evil.
34 And behold, many did declare unto the people,
That they had seen angels and
had conversed with them;
And thus they had told them things of God, and of his
righteousness.
35 And it came to pass that there were many that did believe in their words;
And
as many as did believe were baptized;
And they became a righteous people, and
they did establish a church among them.
36 And thus the work of the Lord did commence among the Lamanites;
Thus the Lord
did begin to pour out his Spirit upon them;
And we see that his arm is extended
to all people,
Who will repent and believe on his name.
![]()
ALMA 20
1 AND it came to pass that when they had established a church in that land,
That
king Lamoni desired that Ammon should go with him,
To the land of Nephi, that he
might show him unto his father.
2 And the voice of the Lord came to Ammon, saying:
Thou shalt not go up to the
land of Nephi,
For behold, the king will seek thy life;
But thou shalt go to the
land of Middoni;
For behold, thy brother Aaron, and also Muloki and Ammah are in
prison.
3 Now it came to pass that when Ammon had heard this, he said unto Lamoni:
Behold, my brother and brethren are in prison at Middoni,
And I go that I may
deliver them.
4 Now Lamoni said unto Ammon: I know,
In the strength of the Lord thou canst do
all things.
But behold, I will go with thee to the land of Middoni;
For the king
of the land of Middoni, whose name is Antiomno, is a friend unto me;
Therefore I
go to the land of Middoni, that I may flatter the king of the land,
And he will cast thy brethren out of prison.
Now Lamoni said unto him:
Who told thee that thy brethren were in prison?
5 And Ammon said unto him: No one hath told me, save it be God;
He said unto
me──Go and deliver thy brethren, for they are in prison in the land of Middoni.
6 Now when Lamoni had heard this he caused that his servants should make ready
his horses and his chariots.
7 And he said unto Ammon: Come, I will go with thee down to the land of Middoni,
And there I will plead with the king that he will cast thy brethren out of
prison.
8 And it came to pass that as Ammon and Lamoni were journeying thither,
They met
the father of Lamoni, who was king over all the land.
9 And behold, the father of Lamoni said unto him:
Why did ye not come to the
feast,
On that great day when I made a feast unto my sons, and unto my people?
10 And he also said: Whither art thou going with this Nephite, who is one of the
children of a liar?
11 And it came to pass that Lamoni rehearsed unto him whither he was going, for
he feared to offend him.
12 And he also told him all the cause of his tarrying in his own kingdom,
That
he did not go unto his father to the feast which he had prepared.
13 And now when Lamoni had rehearsed unto him all these things,
Behold, to his
astonishment, his father was angry with him, and said: Lamoni,
Thou art going to
deliver these Nephites, who are sons of a liar. Behold, he robbed our fathers;
And now his children are also come amongst us that they may,
By their cunning
and their lyings, deceive us, that they again may rob us of our property.
14 Now the father of Lamoni commanded him that he should slay Ammon with the
sword.
And he also commanded him that he should not go to the land of Middoni,
But that he should return with him to the land of Ishmael.
15 But Lamoni said unto him: I will not slay Ammon,
Neither will I return to the
land of Ishmael,
But I go to the land of Middoni,
That I may release the brethren
of Ammon,
For I know that they are just men and holy prophets of the true God.
16 Now when his father had heard these words, he was angry with him,
And he drew
his sword that he might smite him to the earth.
17 But Ammon stood forth and said unto him:
Behold, thou shalt not slay thy son;
Nevertheless, it were better that he should fall than thee,
For behold, he has
repented of his sins; but if thou shouldst fall at this time,
In thine anger, thy soul could not be saved. And again, it is expedient thou shouldst forbear;
For if thou shouldst
slay thy son, he being an innocent man,
His blood would cry from the ground to
the Lord his God,
For vengeance to come upon thee;
And perhaps thou wouldst lose
thy soul.
19 Now when Ammon had said these words unto him,
He answered him, saying: I know
that if I should slay my son,
That I should shed innocent blood; for it is thou
that hast sought to destroy him.
20 And he stretched forth his hand to slay Ammon, but Ammon withstood his blows,
And also smote his arm that he could not use it.
21 Now when the king saw that Ammon could slay him,
He began to plead with Ammon that he would spare his life.
22 But Ammon raised his sword, and said unto him: Behold, I will smite thee,
Except thou wilt grant unto me that my brethren may be cast out of prison.
23 Now the king, fearing he should lose his life, said:
If thou wilt spare me I
will grant unto thee,
Whatsoever thou wilt ask, even to half of the kingdom.
24 Now when Ammon saw that he had wrought upon the old king,
According to his
desire, he said unto him: If thou wilt grant,
That my brethren may be cast out of
prison, and also that Lamoni may retain his kingdom,
And that ye be not
displeased with him, but grant that he may do according to his own desires,
In
whatsoever thing he thinketh, then will I spare thee; otherwise I will smite
thee to the earth.
25 Now when Ammon had said these words, the king began to rejoice because of his
life.
26 And when he saw that Ammon had no desire to destroy him,
And when he also saw
the great love he had for his son, Lamoni,
He was astonished exceedingly, and
said: Because this is all that thou hast desired,
That I would release thy
brethren, and suffer that my son Lamoni should retain his kingdom,
Behold, I
will grant unto you that my son, may retain his kingdom,
From this time and
forever; and I will govern him no more──
27 And I will also grant unto thee,
That thy brethren may be cast out of prison, and thou,
And thy brethren may come unto me, in my kingdom; for I shall greatly
desire to see thee.
For the king was greatly astonished at the words which he
had spoken, and also at the words,
Which had been spoken by his son Lamoni, therefore he was desirous to learn them.
28 And it came to pass that Ammon and Lamoni proceeded,
On their journey towards
the land of Middoni.
And Lamoni found favor in the eyes of the king of the land;
Therefore the brethren of Ammon were brought forth out of the prison.
29 And when Ammon did meet them he was exceedingly sorrowful, for behold they
were naked,
And their skins were worn exceedingly because of being bound with
strong cords.
And they also had suffered hunger, thirst, and all kinds of
afflictions;
Nevertheless they were patient in all their sufferings.
30 And, as it happened, it was their lot,
To have fallen into the hands of a more
hardened and a more stiffnecked people;
Therefore they would not hearken unto
their words, and they had cast them out, and had smitten them,
And had driven
them from house to house, and from place to place,
Even until they had arrived
in the land of Middoni;
And there they were taken and cast into prison,
And
bound with strong cords,
And kept in prison for many days,
And were delivered by
Lamoni and Ammon.
![]()
ALMA 21
1 NOW when Ammon and his brethren separated themselves in the borders of the
land of the Lamanites,
Behold Aaron took his journey towards the land which was
called by the Lamanites, Jerusalem,
Calling it after the land of their fathers'
nativity;
And it was away joining the borders of Mormon.
2 Now the Lamanites and the Amlicites,
And the people of Amulon had built a
great city, which was called Jerusalem.
3 Now the Lamanites of themselves were sufficiently hardened,
But the Amlicites
and the Amulonites were still harder;
Therefore they did cause the Lamanites that they should harden their hearts,
That they should wax strong in wickedness
and their abominations.
4 And it came to pass that Aaron came to the city of Jerusalem,
And first began
to preach to the Amlicites.
And he began to preach to them in their synagogues,
For they had built synagogues after the order of the Nehors;
For many of the Amlicites and the Amulonites were after the order of the Nehors.
5 Therefore, as Aaron entered into one of their synagogues to preach unto the
people,
And as he was speaking unto them, behold there arose an Amalekite,
And
began to contend with him, saying:
What is that thou hast testified?
Hast thou
seen an angel?
Why do not angels appear unto us?
Behold are not this people as
good as thy people?
6 Thou also sayest, except we repent we shall perish.
How knowest thou the thought and intent of our hearts? How knowest
thou that we have cause to repent?
How knowest thou that we are not a righteous people? Behold, we have built
sanctuaries,
And we do assemble ourselves together to worship God. We do believe
that God will save all men.
7 Now Aaron said unto him: Believest thou that the Son of God shall come to
redeem mankind from their sins?
8 And the man said unto him: We do not believe that thou knowest any such thing.
We do not believe in these foolish traditions.
We do not believe that thou
knowest of things to come,
Neither do we believe that thy fathers and also that
our fathers,
Did know concerning the things which they spake, of that which is to
come.
9 Now Aaron began to open the scriptures unto them concerning the coming of
Christ,
And also concerning the resurrection of the dead, and that there could
be no redemption for mankind,
Save it were through the death and sufferings of
Christ, and the atonement of his blood.
10 And it came to pass as he began to expound these things unto them they were
angry with him,
And began to mock him; and they would not hear the words which
he spake.
11 Therefore, when he saw that they would not hear his words,
He departed out of
their synagogue,
And came over to a village which was called Ani-Anti,
And there
he found Muloki preaching the word unto them;
and also Ammah and his brethren.
And they contended with many about the word.
12 And it came to pass that they saw,
That the people would harden their hearts,
Therefore they departed and came over into the land of Middoni.
And they did
preach the word unto many, and few believed on the words which they taught.
13 Nevertheless, Aaron and a certain number of his brethren were taken and cast
into prison,
And the remainder of them fled out of the land of Middoni unto the regions round about.
14 And those who were cast into prison suffered many things,
And they were
delivered by the hand of Lamoni and Ammon,
And they were fed and clothed. And they went forth again to declare the word,
And thus they were delivered
for the first time out of prison; and thus they had suffered.
16 And they went forth whithersoever they were led by the Spirit of the Lord,
Preaching the word of God in every synagogue of the Amlicites,
Or in every
assembly of the Lamanites where they could be admitted.
17 And it came to pass that the Lord began to bless them insomuch that they
brought many,
To the knowledge of the truth; yea, they did convince many of their
sins,
And of the traditions of their fathers, which were not correct.
18 And it came to pass that Ammon and Lamoni,
Returned from the land of Middoni,
To the land of Ishmael, which was the land of the inheritance.
19 And king Lamoni would not suffer that Ammon should serve him, or be his
servant.
20 But he caused that there should be synagogues built in the land of Ishmael;
And he caused that his people, or the people who were under his reign,
Should
assemble themselves together.
21 And he did rejoice over them, and he did teach them many things.
And he did
also declare unto them that they were a people who were under him,
And that they
were a free people, that they were free from the oppressions of the king, his
father;
For that his father had granted unto him that he might reign over the
people,
Who were in the land of Ishmael, and in all the land round about.
22 And he also declared unto them that they might have,
The liberty of worshiping
the Lord their God,
According to their desires, in whatsoever place they were in,
If it were in the land which was under the reign of king Lamoni.
23 And Ammon did preach unto the people of king Lamoni;
And it came to pass that
he did teach them all things,
Concerning things pertaining to righteousness.
And
he did exhort them daily,
With all diligence; and they gave heed unto his word,
And they were zealous for keeping the commandments of God.
![]()
ALMA 22
1 Now, as Ammon was thus teaching the people of Lamoni continually,
We will
return to the account of Aaron and his brethren;
For after he departed from the
land of Middoni,
He was led by the Spirit to the land of Nephi,
Even to the house
of the king which was over all the land,
Save it were the land of Ishmael; and he
was the father of Lamoni.
2 And it came to pass that he went in unto him into the king's palace,
With his
brethren, and bowed himself before the king, and said unto him:
Behold, O king,
we are the brethren of Ammon, whom thou hast delivered out of prison.
3 And now, O king, if thou wilt spare our lives, we will be thy servants.
And
the king said unto them: Arise, for I will grant unto you your lives,
And I will
not suffer that ye shall be my servants;
But I will insist that ye shall
administer unto me;
For I have been somewhat troubled in mind,
Because of the
generosity and the greatness of the words of thy brother Ammon;
And I desire to
know the cause why he has not come up out of Middoni with thee.
4 And Aaron said unto the king: Behold, the Spirit of the Lord has called him
another way;
He has gone to the land of Ishmael, to teach the people of Lamoni.
5 Now the king said unto them: What is this that ye have said,
Concerning the
Spirit of the Lord?
Behold, this is the thing which doth trouble me.
6 And also, what is this that Ammon said──If ye will repent ye shall be saved,
And if ye will not repent, ye shall be cast off at the last day?
7 And Aaron answered him and said unto him:
Believest thou that there is a God?
And the king said:
I know that the Amlicites say that there is a God,
And I
have granted unto them that they should build sanctuaries,
That they may
assemble themselves together to worship him.
And if now thou sayest their is a God, behold I will believe.
8 And now when Aaron heard this, his heart began to rejoice,
And he said:
Behold, assuredly as thou livest, O king, there is a God.
9 And the king said: Is God that Great Spirit that brought our fathers out of
the land of Jerusalem?
10 And Aaron said unto him: Yea, he is that Great Spirit,
And he created all
things both in heaven and in earth. Believest thou this?
11 And he said: Yea, I believe that the Great Spirit created all things,
And I
desire that ye should tell me concerning all these things, and I will believe
thy words.
12 And it came to pass that when Aaron saw that the king would believe his
words,
He began from the creation of Adam, reading the scriptures unto the
king──
How God created man after his own image,
And that God gave him
commandments,
And that because of transgression, man had fallen.
13 And Aaron did expound unto him the scriptures from the creation of Adam,
Laying the fall of man before him, and their carnal state and also the plan of
redemption,
Which was prepared from the foundation of the world, through Christ,
for all whosoever would believe on his name.
14 And since man had fallen he could not merit anything of himself;
But the
sufferings and death of Christ atone for their sins, through faith and
repentance, and so forth;
And that he breaketh the bands of death, that the
grave shall have no victory,
And that the sting of death should be swallowed up
in the hopes of glory;
And Aaron did expound all these things unto the king.
15 And it came to pass that after Aaron had expounded these things unto him,
The
king said: What shall I do that I may have this eternal life of which thou hast
spoken?
Yea, what shall I do that I may be born of God, having this wicked
spirit rooted out of my breast,
And receive his Spirit that I may be filled
with joy,
That I may not be cast off at the last day?
Behold, said he, I will
give up all that I possess,
Yea, I will forsake my kingdom, that I may receive
this great joy.
16 But Aaron said unto him: If thou desirest this thing,
If thou wilt bow down
before God,
yea, if thou wilt repent of all thy sins,
And will bow down before
God, and call on his name in faith,
Believing that ye shall receive, then shalt
thou receive the hope which thou desirest.
17 And it came to pass that when Aaron had said these words, the king did bow
down before the Lord, upon his knees;
Yea, even he did prostrate himself upon
the earth, and cried mightily saying:
18 O God, Aaron hath told me that there is a God; and if there is a God,
And if
thou art God, wilt thou make thyself known unto me,
And I will give away all my
sins to know thee, and that I may be raised from the dead,
And be saved at the
last day. And now when the king had said these words, he was struck as if he
were dead.
19 And it came to pass that his servants ran and told the queen all that had
happened unto the king.
And she came in unto the king; and when she saw him lay
as if he were dead, and also Aaron,
And his brethren standing as though they had
been the cause of his fall,
She was angry with them, and commanded that her
servants,
Or the servants of the king, should take them and slay them.
20 Now the servants had seen the cause of the king's fall,
Therefore they durst
not lay their hands on Aaron and his brethren;
And they pled with the queen
saying: Why commandest thou that we should slay these men,
When behold one of
them is mightier than us all? Therefore we shall fall before them.
Now when the queen saw the fear of the servants she also began to fear
exceedingly,
Last there should some evil come upon her.
And she commanded her
servants,
That they should go and call the people,
That they might slay Aaron and
his brethren.
22 Now when Aaron saw the determination of the queen,
He, also knowing the
hardness of the hearts of the people,
Feared lest that a multitude should
assemble themselves together,
And there should be a great contention and a
disturbance among them;
Therefore he put forth his hand, and raised the king from
the earth,
And said unto him: Stand. And he stood upon his feet, receiving his
strength.
23 Now this was done in the presence of the queen and many of the servants.
And
when they saw it they greatly marveled, and began to fear.
And the king stood
forth, and began to minister unto them.
And he did minister unto them, insomuch,
That his whole household were converted unto the Lord.
24 Now there was a multitude gathered together because of the commandment of the
queen,
And there began to be great murmurings among them because of Aaron and
his brethren.
25 But the king stood forth among them and administered unto them.
And they were
pacified towards Aaron and those who were with him.
26 And it came to pass that when the king saw that the people were pacified,
He
caused that Aaron and his brethren should stand forth,
In the midst of the
multitude, and that they should preach the word unto them.
27 And it came to pass that the king sent a proclamation throughout all the
land,
Amongst all his people who were in all his land, who were in all the
regions round about,
Which was bordering even to the sea, on the east and on the
west,
And which was divided from the land of Zarahemla,
By a narrow strip of
wilderness,
Which ran from the sea east even to the sea west,
And round about on
the borders of the seashore, and the borders of the wilderness,
Which was on the
north by the land of Zarahemla, through the borders of Manti,
By the head of the
river Sidon, running from the east towards the west──
And thus were the Lamanites
and the Nephites divided.
28 Now, the more idle part of the Lamanites,
Lived in the wilderness, and dwelt
in tents;
And they were spread through the wilderness on the west,
In the land
of Nephi; yea, and also on the west of the land of Zarahemla,
In the borders by
the seashore, and on the west in the land of Nephi,
In the place of their
fathers' first inheritance,
And thus bordering along by the seashore.
29 And also there were many Lamanites,
On the east by the seashore,
Whither the
Nephites had driven them.
And thus the Nephites were nearly surrounded by the
Lamanites;
Nevertheless the Nephites had taken possession of all the northern
parts of the land,
Bordering on the wilderness, at the head of the river Sidon,
From the east to the west, round about on the wilderness side;
On the north,
even until they came to the land which they called Bountiful.
30 And it bordered upon the land which they called Desolation,
It being so far
northward that it came into the land,
Which had been peopled and been destroyed,
Of whose bones we have spoken,
Which was discovered by the people of Zarahemla,
It being the place of their first landing; and they came from there up into the south wilderness.
Thus the land on the
northward was called Desolation, and the land on the southward was called
Bountiful,
It being the wilderness which is filled with all manner of wild
animals of every kind,
A part of which had come from the land northward for
food.
32 And now, it was only the distance of a day and a half's journey for a
Nephite,
On the line Bountiful and the land Desolation, from the east to the
west sea;
And thus the land of Nephi and the land of Zarahemla were nearly
surrounded by water,
There being a small neck of land between the land northward
and the land southward.
33 And it came to pass that the Nephites had inhabited the land Bountiful,
Even
from the east unto the west sea,
And thus the Nephites in their wisdom, with
their guards and their armies,
Had hemmed in the Lamanites on the south, that
thereby they should have no more possession on the north,
That they might not
overrun the land northward. Therefore the Lamanites could have no more possessions,
Only in the land of
Nephi, and the wilderness round about.
Now this was wisdom in the Nephites──
As
the Lamanites were an enemy to them,
They would not suffer their afflictions on
every hand,
And also that they might have a country whither they might flee,
according to their desires.
35 And now I, after having said this, return again to the account of Ammon and
Aaron,
Omner and Himni, and their brethren.
![]()
ALMA 23
1 Behold, now it came to pass,
That the king of the Lamanites sent a proclamation
among all his people,
That they should not lay their hands on Ammon, or Aaron,
or Omner, or Himni,
Nor either of their brethren who should go forth preaching
the word of God,
In whatsoever place they should be, in any part of their land.
2 Yea, he sent a decree among them,
That they should not lay their hands on them
to bind them,
Or to cast them into prison; neither should they spit upon them,
nor smite them,
Nor cast them out of their synagogues, nor scourge them; neither
should they cast stones at them,
But that they should have free access to their
houses, and also their temples, and their sanctuaries.
3 And thus they might go forth and preach the word according to their desires,
For the king had been converted unto the Lord, and all his household;
Therefore
he sent his proclamation throughout the land unto his people,
That the word of
God might have no obstruction, but that it might go forth throughout all the
land,
That his people might be convinced concerning the wicked traditions of
their fathers,
And that they might be convinced that they were all brethren,
And
that they ought not to murder, nor to plunder,
Nor to steal, nor to commit
adultery,
Nor to commit any manner of wickedness.
4 And now it came to pass that when the king had sent forth this proclamation,
That Aaron and his brethren went forth from city to city, and from one house of
worship to another,
Establishing churches, and consecrating priests and teachers
throughout the land among the Lamanites,
To preach and to teach the word of God
among them; and thus they began to have great success.
5 And thousands were brought to the knowledge of the Lord,
Yea, thousands were
brought to believe in the traditions of the Nephites;
And they were taught the
records and prophecies which were handed down even to the present time.
6 And as sure as the Lord liveth, so sure as many as believed,
Or as many as
were brought to the knowledge of the truth,
Through the preaching of Ammon and
his brethren,
According to the spirit of revelation and of prophecy,
And the
power of God working miracles in them──
Yea, I say unto you, as the Lord liveth,
As many of the Lamanites as believed in their preaching,
And were converted unto
the Lord, never did fall away.
7 For they became a righteous people; they did lay down the weapons of their
rebellion,
That they did not fight against God any more, neither against any of their brethren.
8 Now, these are they who were converted unto the Lord:
9 The people of the Lamanites who were in the land of Ishmael;
10 And also of the people of the Lamanites who were in the land of Middoni;
11 And also of the people of the Lamanites who were in the city of Nephi;
12 And also of the people of the Lamanites who were in the land of Shilom,
And
who were in the land of Shemlon, and in the city of Lemuel, and in the city of
Shimnilom.
13 And these are the names of the cities of the Lamanites which were converted
unto the Lord;
And these are they that laid down the weapons of their rebellion,
Yea, all their weapons of war; and they were all Lamanites.
14 And the Amlicites were not converted, save only one;
Neither were any of the Amulonites; but they did harden their hearts,
And also the hearts of the
Lamanites in that part of the land wheresoever they dwelt,
Yea, and all their
villages and all their cities. Therefore, we have named all the cities of the Lamanites,
In which they did
repent and come to the knowledge of the truth, and were converted.
16 And now it came to pass that the king and those who were converted,
Were
desirous that they might have a name,
That thereby they might be distinguished
from their brethren;
Therefore the king consulted with Aaron and many of their priests,
Concerning the name that they should take upon them, that they might be
distinguished.
17 And it came to pass that they called their names Anti-Nephi-Lehies;
And they
were called by this name and were no more called Lamanites.
18 And they began to be a very industrious people;
Yea, and they were friendly
with the Nephites;
Therefore, they did open a correspondence with them,
And the
curse of God did no more follow them.
![]()
ALMA 24
1 AND it came to pass that the Amlicites,
And the Amulonites and the Lamanites,
Who were in the land of Amulon, and also in the land of Helam,
` And who were in
the land of Jerusalem, and in fine, in all the land round about,
Who had not
been converted and had not taken upon them the name of Anti-Nephi-Lehi,
Were
stirred up by the Amlicites and by the Amulonites to anger against their
brethren.
2 And their hatred became exceedingly sore against them,
Even insomuch that they
began to rebel against their king,
Insomuch that they would not that he should
be their king;
Therefore, they took up arms against the people of
Anti-Nephi-Lehi.
3 Now the king conferred the kingdom upon his son, and he called his name
Anti-Nephi-Lehi.
4 And the king died in that selfsame year that the Lamanites,
Began to make
preparations for war against the people of God.
5 Now when Ammon and his brethren and all those who had come up with him,
Saw the
preparations of the Lamanites to destroy their brethren, they came forth to the
land of Midian,
And there Ammon met all his brethren; and from thence they came to the land of Ishmael,
That they might hold a council with Lamoni and also with
his brother Anti-Nephi-Lehi,
What they should do to defend themselves against
the Lamanites.
6 Now there was not one soul among all the people,
Who had been converted unto
the Lord,
That would take up arms against their brethren;
Nay, they would not
even make any preparations for war;
Yea, and also their king commanded them that
they should not.
7 Now, these are the words which he said unto the people concerning the matter:
I thank my God, my beloved people, that our great God has in goodness sent these
our brethren,
The Nephites, unto us to preach unto us, and to convince us of the
traditions of our wicked fathers.
8 And behold, I thank my great God that he has given us a portion of his Spirit
to soften our hearts,
That we have opened a correspondence with these brethren,
the Nephites.
9 And behold, I also thank my God that by opening this correspondence,
We have
been convinced of our sins,
And of the many murders which we have committed.
10 And I also thank my God, yea, my great God,
That he hath granted unto us that
we might repent of these things,
And also that he hath forgiven us of those our
many sins and murders which we have committed,
And taken away the guilt from our
hearts, through the merits of his Son.
11 And now behold, my brethren, since it has been all that we could do,
(as we
were the most lost of all mankind)
To repent of all our sins,
And the many
murders which we have committed,
And to get God to take them away from our
hearts,
For it was all we could do to repent sufficiently before God,
That he
would take away our stain──Now, my best beloved brethren,
Since God hath taken away our stains, and our
swords have become bright,
Then let us stain our swords no more with the blood
of our brethren.
13 Behold, I say unto you, Nay, let us retain our swords,
That they be not
stained with the blood of our brethren;
For perhaps, if we should stain our
swords again they can no more be washed bright,
Through the blood of the Son of
our great God, which shall be shed for the atonement of our sins.
14 And the great God has had mercy on us, and made these things known unto us
that we might not perish;
Yea, and he has made these things known unto us
beforehand,
Because he loveth our souls as well as he loveth our children;
Therefore, in his mercy he doth visit us by his angels,
That the plan of
salvation might be made known unto us,
As well as unto future generations.
15 Oh, how merciful is our God!
And now behold, since it has been as much as we
could do,
To get our stains taken away from us, and our swords are made bright,
Let us hide them away that they may be kept bright, as a testimony to our God at
the last day,
Or at the day that we shall be brought to stand before him to be
judged,
That we have not stained our swords in the blood of our brethren,
Since
he imparted his word unto us,
and has made us clean thereby.
16 And now, my brethren, if our brethren seek to destroy us,
Behold, we will
hide away our swords, yea, even we will bury them deep in the earth,
That they
may be kept bright, as a testimony that we have never used them, at the last
day;
And if our brethren destroy us, behold, we shall go to our God and shall be
saved.
17 And now it came to pass that when the king had made an end of these sayings,
And all the people were assembled together, they took their swords,
And all the
weapons which were used for the shedding of man's blood,
And they did bury them
up deep in the earth.
18 And this they did, it being in their view a testimony to God, and also to
men,
That they never would use weapons again for the shedding of man's blood;
And this they did, vouching and covenanting with God,
That rather than shed the
blood of their brethren,
They would give up their own lives;
And rather than take
away from a brother they would give unto him;
And rather than spend their days
in idleness they would labor abundantly with their hands.
19 And thus we see that, when these Lamanites were brought to believe and to
know the truth,
They were firm, and would suffer even unto death rather than
commit sin;
And thus we see that they buried their weapons of peace,
Or they
buried the weapons of war, for peace.
20 And it came to pass that their brethren, the Lamanites,
Made preparations for
war, and came up to the land of Nephi,
For the purpose of destroying the king, and to place another in his stead,
And also of destroying the people of
Anti-Nephi-Lehi out of the land.
21 Now when the people saw that they were coming against them,
They went out to
meet them,
And prostrated themselves before them to the earth,
And began to call
on the name of the Lord; and thus they were in this attitude,
When the Lamanites
began to fall upon them, and began to slay them with the sword.
22 And thus without meeting any resistance, they did slay a thousand and five of
them;
And we know that they are blessed, for they have gone to dwell with their
God.
23 Now when the Lamanites saw that their brethren would not flee from the sword,
Neither would they turn aside to the right hand or to the left,
But that they
would lie down and perish,
And praised God even in the very act of perishing
under the sword──
24 Now when the Lamanites saw this they did forbear from slaying them;
And there
were many whose hearts had swollen in them for those of their brethren,
Who had
fallen under the sword, for they repented of the things which they had done.
25 And it came to pass that they threw down their weapons of war,
And they would
not take them again,
for they were stung for the murders which they had
committed;
And they came down even as their brethren, relying upon the mercies,
Of those whose arms were lifted to slay them. And it came to pass that the people of God,
Were joined that day by more than
the number who had been slain;
And those who had been slain were righteous
people,
Therefore we have no reason to doubt,
But what they were saved.
27 And there was not a wicked man slain among them;
But there were more than a
thousand brought to the knowledge of the truth;
Thus we see that the Lord
worketh in many ways to the salvation of his people.
28 Now the greatest number of those of the Lamanites who slew so many of their
brethren,
Were Amlicites and Amulonites, the greatest number of whom were after
the order of the Nehors.
29 Now, among those who joined the people of the Lord, there were none who were
Amlicites or Amulonites,
Or who were of the order of Nehor, but they were
actual descendants of Laman and Lemuel.
30 And thus we can plainly discern, that after a people have been once
enlightened by the Spirit of God,
And have had great knowledge of things
pertaining to righteousness,
And then have fallen away into sin and
transgression,
They become more hardened,
And thus their state becomes worse,
Than though they had never known these things.
![]()
ALMA 25
1 AND behold, now it came to pass,
That those Lamanites were more angry,
Because
they had slain their brethren;
Therefore they swore vengeance upon the Nephites;
And they did no more attempt to slay the people of Anti-Nephi-Lehi at that time.
2 But they took their armies and went over into the borders of the land of
Zarahemla,
And fell upon the people who were in the land of Ammonihah and destroyed them.
3 And after that, they had many battles with the Nephites, in the which they
were driven and slain.
4 And among the Lamanites who were slain were almost all the seed of Amulon and
his brethren,
Who were the priests of Noah, and they were slain by the hands of
the Nephites;
5 And the remainder, having fled into the east wilderness,
And having usurped
the power and authority over the Lamanites,
Caused that many of the Lamanites
should perish by fire because of their belief──
6 For many of them, after having suffered much loss and so many afflictions,
Began to be stirred up in remembrance of the words which Aaron,
And his brethren
had preached to them in their land;
Therefore they began to disbelieve the
traditions of their fathers,
And to believe in the Lord, and that he gave great
power unto the Nephites;
And thus there were many of them converted in the
wilderness.
7 And it came to pass that those rulers who were the remnant of the children of Amulon,
Caused that they should be put to death, yea, all those that believed in
these things.
8 Now this martyrdom caused that many of their brethren should be stirred up to
anger;
And there began to be contention in the wilderness;
And the Lamanites
began to hunt the seed of Amulon and his brethren,
And began to slay them; and
they fled into the east wilderness.
9 And behold they are hunted at this day by the Lamanites.
Thus the words of Abinadi were brought to pass, which he said,
Concerning the seed of the priests who caused that he should suffer death by fire.
10 For he said unto them: What ye shall do unto me shall be a type of things to
come.
11 And now Abinadi was the first that suffered death by fire because of his
belief in God;
Now this is what he meant, that many should suffer death by fire, according as he had suffered.
12 And he said unto the priests of Noah that their seed should cause many to be
put to death,
In the like manner as he was, and that they should be scattered
abroad and slain,
Even as a sheep having no shepherd is driven and slain by wild
beasts;
And now, behold, these words were verified,
For they were driven by the
Lamanites,
And they were hunted, and they were smitten.
13 And it came to pass that when the Lamanites saw that,
They could not overpower
the Nephites they returned again to their own land;
And many of them came over
to dwell in the land of Ishmael and the land of Nephi,
And did join themselves
to the people of God, who were the people of Anti-Nephi-Lehi.
14 And they did also bury their weapons of war, according as their brethren had,
And they began to be a righteous people; and they did walk in the ways of the
Lord,
And did observe to keep his commandments and his statutes.
15 Yea, and they did keep the law of Moses;
For it was expedient that they
should,
Keep the law of Moses as yet,
For it was not all fulfilled.
But
notwithstanding the law of Moses,
They did look forward to the coming of Christ,
Considering that the law of Moses was a type of his coming,
And believing that
they must keep those outward performances,
Until the time that he should be
revealed unto them.
16 Now they did not suppose that salvation came by the law of Moses;
But the law
of Moses did serve to strengthen their faith in Christ;
And thus they did retain
a hope through faith, unto eternal salvation,
Relying upon the spirit of
prophecy, which spake of those things to come.
17 And now behold, Ammon, and Aaron, and Omner, and Himni,
And their brethren
did rejoice exceedingly,
For the success which they had had among the Lamanites,
Seeing that the Lord had granted unto them according to their prayers,
And that
he had also verified his word unto them in every particular.
![]()
ALMA 26
1 AND now, these are the words of Ammon to his brethren, which say thus:
My
brothers and my brethren, behold I say unto you, how great reason have we to
rejoice;
For could we have supposed when we started from the land of Zarahemla,
That God would have granted unto us such great blessings?
2 And now, I ask, what great blessings has he bestowed upon us? Can ye tell?
3 Behold, I answer for you; for our brethren, the Lamanites, were in
darkness,
Yea, even in the darkest abyss, but behold, how many of them,
Are brought to behold the marvelous light of God!
And this is the blessing which hath been bestowed upon us,
That we have been made instruments in the hands of God to bring
about this great work.
4 Behold, thousands of them do rejoice, and have been brought into the fold of
God.
5 Behold, the field was ripe, and blessed are ye, for ye did thrust in the
sickle,
And did reap with your might, yea, all the day long did ye labor;
And
behold the number of your sheaves!
And they shall be gathered into the garners,
that they are not wasted.
6 Yea, they shall not be beaten down by the storm at the last day;
Yea, neither
shall they be harrowed up by the whirlwinds;
But when the storm cometh they
shall be,
Gathered together in their place, that the storm cannot penetrate to
them;
Yea, neither shall they be driven with fierce winds whithersoever the
enemy listeth to carry them.
7 But behold, they are in the hands of the Lord of the harvest, and they are
his;
And he will raise them up at the last day. Blessed be the name of our God;
Let us sing to his praise, yea, let us give
thanks to his holy name,
For he doth work righteousness forever.
9 For if we had not come up out of the land of Zarahemla,
These our dearly
beloved brethren, who have so dearly beloved us,
Would still have been racked
with hatred against us, yea, and they would also have been strangers to God.
10 And it came to pass that when Ammon had said these words, his brother Aaron
rebuked him,
Saying: Ammon, I fear that thy joy doth carry thee away unto
boasting.
11 But Ammon said unto him: I do not boast in my strength,
Nor in my own
wisdom; but behold, my joy is full,
Yea, my heart is brim with joy,
And I will
rejoice in my God.
12 Yea, I know that I am nothing; as to my strength I am weak;
Therefore I will
not boast of myself, but I will boast of my God,
For in his strength I can do
all things; yea, behold, many mighty miracles,
We have wrought in this land, for
which we will praise his name forever.
13 Behold, how many thousands of our brethren has he loosed from the pains of
hell?
And they are brought to sing redeeming love, and this because of the power
of his word which is in us,
Therefore have we not great reason to rejoice?
14 Yea, we have reason to praise him forever,
For he is the Most High God,
And
has loosed our brethren from the chains of hell.
15 Yea, they were encircled about with everlasting darkness and destruction;
But
behold, he has brought them into his everlasting light,
Yea, into everlasting
salvation;
And they are encircled about with the matchless bounty of his love;
Yea, and we have been instruments in his hands of doing this great and marvelous
work.
16 Therefore, let us glory, yea, we will glory in the Lord; yea, we will
rejoice, for our joy is full;
Yea, we will praise our God forever. Behold, who
can glory too much in the Lord?
Yea, who can say too much of his great power,
and of his mercy,
And of his long-suffering towards the children of men?
Behold,
I say unto you,
I cannot say the smallest part which I feel.
17 Who could have supposed that our God would have been so merciful,
As to have
snatched us from our awful, sinful, and polluted state?
18 Behold, we went forth even in wrath, with mighty threatenings to destroy his
church.
19 Oh then, why did he not consign us to an awful destruction,
Yea, why did he
not let the sword of his justice fall upon us, and doom us to eternal despair?
Oh, my soul, almost as it were, fleeth at the thought. Behold, he did not
exercise his justice upon us,
But in his great mercy hath brought us over that
everlasting gulf of death and misery,
Even to the salvation of our souls. And now behold, my brethren,
What natural man is there that knoweth these
things?
I say unto you, there is none that knoweth these things, save it be the
penitent.
22 Yea, he that repenteth and exerciseth faith, and bringeth forth good works,
And prayeth continually without ceasing──unto such it is given to know the
mysteries of God;
Yea, unto such it shall be given to reveal things which never
have been revealed;
Yea, and it shall be given unto such to bring thousands of souls to repentance,
Even as it has been given unto us to bring these our
brethren to repentance.
23 Now do ye remember, my brethren, that we said unto our brethren,
In the land
of Zarahemla, we go up to the land of Nephi,
To preach unto our brethren, the
Lamanites, and they laughed us to scorn?
24 For they said unto us: Do ye suppose that ye can bring the Lamanites to the
knowledge of the truth?
Do ye suppose that ye can convince the Lamanites of the
incorrectness of the traditions of their fathers,
As stiffnecked a people as
they are; whose hearts delight in the shedding of blood;
Whose days have been
spent in the grossest iniquity;
Whose ways have been the ways of a transgressor
from the beginning?
Now my brethren, ye remember that this was their language.
25 And moreover they did say: Let us take up arms against them,
That we might destroy
them and their iniquity out of the land,
Lest they overrun us and destroy us. But behold, my beloved brethren,
We came into the wilderness not with the
intent to destroy our brethren,
But with the intent that perhaps we might save
some few of their souls.
27 Now when our hearts were depressed, and we were about to turn back,
Behold,
the Lord comforted us, and said: Go amongst thy brethren,
The Lamanites, and
bear with patience thine afflictions,
And I will give unto you success.
28 And now behold, we have come, and been forth amongst them;
And we have been patient in our sufferings, and we have suffered
every privation;
Yea, we have traveled from house to house, relying upon the mercies
of the world──
Not upon the mercies of the world alone but upon the mercies of
God.
29 And we have entered into their houses and taught them,
And we have taught
them in their streets;
Yea, and we have taught them upon their hills,
And we have also entered into their temples and synagogues and taught them;
And
we have been cast out, and mocked, and spit upon, and smote upon our cheeks;
And
we have been stoned, and taken and bound with strong cords, and cast into
prison;
And through the power and wisdom of God we have been delivered
again.
30 And we have suffered all manner of afflictions, and all this,
That perhaps we
might be the means of saving some soul;
And we supposed that our joy would be
full,
If perhaps we could be the means of saving some. Now behold, we can look forth,
And see the fruits of our labors; and are they
few? I say unto you, Nay, they are many;
Yea, and we can witness of their
sincerity, because of their love towards their brethren and also towards us.
32 For behold, they had rather sacrifice their lives than even to take the life
of their enemy;
And they have buried their weapons of war deep in the earth,
Because of their love towards their brethren.
33 And now behold I say unto you,
Has there been so great love in all the land?
Behold, I say unto you, Nay, there has not, even among the Nephites.
34 For behold, they would take up arms against their brethren; they would not
suffer themselves to be slain.
But behold how many of these have laid down their
lives; and we know that they have gone to their God,
Because of their love and
of their hatred to sin. Now have we not reason to rejoice?
Yea, I say unto you, there never were men
that had so great reason to rejoice as we,
Since the world began; yea, and my
joy is carried away, even unto boasting in my God; for he has all power,
All
wisdom, and all understanding; he comprehendeth all things, and he is a merciful
Being,
Even unto salvation, to those who will repent and believe on his name.
36 Now if this is boasting, even so will I boast;
For this is my life and my
light,
My joy and my salvation, and my redemption from everlasting wo.
Yea,
blessed is the name of my God, who has been mindful of this people,
Who are a
branch of the tree of Israel, and has been lost from its body in a strange land;
Yea, I say, blessed be the name of my God, who has been mindful of us, wanderers
in a strange land.
37 Now my brethren, we see that God is mindful of every people, whatsoever land
they may be in;
Yea, he numbereth his people, and his bowels of mercy are over
all the earth.
Now this is my joy, and my great thanksgiving;
Yea, and I will
give thanks unto my God forever. Amen.
![]()
ALMA 27
1 NOW it came to pass that when those Lamanites,
Who had gone to war against the
Nephites had found, after their many struggles to destroy them,
That it was in
vain to seek their destruction, they returned again to the land of Nephi.
2 And it came to pass that the Amlicites, because of their loss, were
exceedingly angry.
And when they saw that they could not seek revenge from the
Nephites,
They began to stir up the people in anger against their brethren,
The
people of Anti-Nephi-Lehi;
Therefore they began again to destroy them.
3 Now this people again refused to take up their arms,
And they suffered themselves
to be slain according to the desires of their enemies.
4 Now when Ammon and his brethren saw this work of destruction among those whom
they so dearly beloved,
And among those who had so dearly beloved them──for they
were treated as though,
They were angels sent from God to save them from
everlasting destruction──
Therefore, when Ammon and his brethren saw this great work of destruction,
They were moved with compassion, and they said unto the
king:
5 Let us gather together this people of the Lord,
And let us go down to the land
of Zarahemla,
To our brethren the Nephites, and flee,
Out of the hands of our
enemies, that we be not destroyed.
6 But the king said unto them: Behold, the Nephites will destroy us,
Because of
the many murders and sins we have committed against them.
7 And Ammon said: I will go and inquire of the Lord, and if he say unto
us,
Go
down unto our brethren, will ye go? And the king said unto him:
Yea, if the Lord saith unto us go, we will go down
unto our brethren,
And we will be their slaves until we repair unto them,
The
many murders and sins which we have committed against them.
9 But Ammon said unto him: It is against the law of our brethren,
Which was
established by my father, that there should be any slaves among them;
Therefore
let us go down and rely upon the mercies of our brethren.
10 But the king said unto him: Inquire of the Lord,
And if he saith unto us go,
we will go; otherwise we will perish in the land.
11 And it came to pass that Ammon went and inquired of the Lord, and the Lord
said unto him:
12 Get this people out of this land, that they perish not;
For Satan has great
hold on the hearts of the Amlicites,
Who do stir up the Lamanites to anger
against their brethren to slay them;
Therefore get thee out of this land; and
blessed are this people,
In this generation, for I will preserve them.
13 And now it came to pass that Ammon went,
And told the king all the words which the Lord had said unto him.
14 And they gathered together all their people, yea, all the people of the Lord,
And did gather together all their flocks and herds, and departed out of the
land,
And came into the wilderness which divided the land of Nephi from the land
of Zarahemla,
And came over near the borders of the land. And it came to pass that Ammon said unto them:
Behold, I and my brethren will
go forth into the land of Zarahemla, and ye shall remain here until we return;
And we will try the hearts of our brethren, whether they will that ye shall come
into their land.
16 And it came to pass that as Ammon was going forth into the land, that he and
his brethren met Alma,
Over in the place of which has been spoken; and behold,
this was a joyful meeting.
17 Now the joy of Ammon was so great even that he was full;
Yea, he was
swallowed up in the joy of his God,
Even to the exhausting of his strength;
And
he fell again to the earth.
18 Now was not this exceeding joy?
Behold, this is joy which none receiveth,
Save
it be the truly penitent and humble seeker of happiness.
19 Now the joy of Alma in meeting his brethren was truly great,
And also the joy
of Aaron, of Omner, and Himni; but behold their joy was not that to exceed their
strength.
20 And now it came to pass that Alma conducted his brethren back to the land of
Zarahemla;
Even to his own house; and they went and told the chief judge all the
things,
That had happened unto them in the land of Nephi,
Among their brethren,
the Lamanites. And it came to pass that the chief judge,
Sent a proclamation throughout all
the land, desiring the voice of the people,
Concerning the admitting their
brethren, who were the people of Anti-Nephi-Lehi.
22 And it came to pass that the voice of the people came, saying:
Behold, we
will give up the land of Jershon, which is on the east by the sea,
Which joins
the land Bountiful, which is on the south of the land Bountiful;
And this land Jershon is the land which we will give unto our brethren for an inheritance.
23 And behold, we will set our armies between the land Jershon and the land
Nephi,
That we may protect our brethren in the land Jershon; and this we do for
our brethren,
On account of their fear to take up arms against their brethren
lest they should commit sin;
And this their great fear came because of their
sore repentance which they had,
On account of their many murders and their awful
wickedness.
24 And now behold, this will we do unto our brethren,
That they may inherit the
land Jershon;
And we will guard them from their enemies with our armies,
On
condition that they will give us a portion of their substance to assist us,
That
we may maintain our armies. Now, it came to pass that when Ammon had heard this,
He returned to the
people of Anti-Nephi-Lehi, and also Alma with him, into the wilderness,
Where
they had pitched their tents, and made known unto them all these things.
And
Alma also related unto them his conversion,
With Ammon and Aaron, and his
brethren.
26 And it came to pass that it did cause great joy among them.
And they went
down into the land of Jershon, and took possession of the land of Jershon;
And
they were called by the Nephites the people of Ammon;
Therefore they were
distinguished by that name ever after.
27 And they were among the people of Nephi,
And also numbered among the people
who were of the church of God.
And they were also distinguished for their zeal
towards God, and also towards men;
For they were perfectly honest and upright in
all things;
And they were firm in the faith of Christ, even unto the end.
28 And they did look upon shedding the blood of their brethren with the greatest
abhorrence;
And they never could be prevailed upon to take up arms against their
brethren;
And they never did look upon death with any degree of terror,
For
their hope and views of Christ and the resurrection;
Therefore, death was
swallowed up to them by the victory of Christ over it.
29 Therefore, they would suffer death in the most aggravating and distressing
manner,
Which could be inflicted by their brethren, before they would take the
sword or cimeter to smite them.
30 And thus they were a zealous and beloved people, a highly favored people of
the Lord.
![]()
ALMA 28
1 AND now it came to pass that after the people of Ammon,
Were established in the
land of Jershon,
And a church also established in the land of Jershon,
And the
armies of the Nephites were set round about the land of Jershon,
Yea, in all the
borders round about the land of Zarahemla;
Behold the armies of the Lamanites
had followed their brethren into the wilderness.
2 And thus there was a tremendous battle; yea, even such an one as never
had been known,
Among all the people in the land from the time Lehi left Jerusalem;
Yea, and tens of thousands of the Lamanites were slain and
scattered abroad.
3 Yea, and also there was a tremendous slaughter among the people of Nephi;
Nevertheless, the Lamanites were driven and scattered,
And the people of Nephi
returned again to their land.
4 And now this was a time that there was a great mourning and lamentation,
Heard
throughout all the land, among all the people of Nephi──
5 Yea, the cry of widows mourning for their husbands,
And also of fathers
mourning for their sons,
And the daughter for the brother, yea, the brother for
the father;
And thus the cry of mourning was heard among all of them,
Mourning
for their kindred who had been slain.
6 And now surely this was a sorrowful day;
Yea, a time of solemnity, and a time
of much fasting and prayer.
7 And thus endeth the fifteenth year of the reign of the judges over the people
of Nephi;
8 And this is the account of Ammon and his brethren, their journeyings in the
land of Nephi,
Their sufferings in the land, their sorrows, and their
afflictions, and their incomprehensible joy,
And the reception and safety of the
brethren in the land of Jershon.
And now may the Lord, the Redeemer of all men, bless their souls
forever.
9 And this is the account of the wars and contentions among the Nephites,
And
also the wars between the Nephites and the Lamanites;
And the fifteenth year of
the reign of the judges is ended.
10 And from the first year to the fifteenth,
Has brought to pass the destruction
of many thousand lives;
Yea, it has brought to pass an awful scene of bloodshed.
11 And the bodies of many thousands are laid low
in the earth,
While the bodies
of many thousands,
Are moldering in heaps upon the face of the earth;
Yea, and
many thousands are mourning for the loss of their kindred,
Because they have
reason to fear, according to the promises of the Lord,
That they are consigned
to a state of endless wo.
12 While many thousands of others truly mourn for the loss of their kindred,
Yet
they rejoice and exult in the hope, and even know, according to the promises of
the Lord,
That they are raised to dwell at the right hand of God, in a state of
never-ending happiness.
13 And thus we see how great the inequality of man is because of sin and
transgression,
And the power of the devil, which comes by the cunning plans,
Which he hath devised to ensnare the hearts of men.
14 And thus we see the great call of diligence of men to labor in the vineyards
of the Lord;
And thus we see the great reason of sorrow, and also of
rejoicing──
Sorrow because of death and destruction among men,
And joy because of
the light of Christ unto life.
![]()
ALMA 29
1 O that I were an angel, and could have the wish of mine heart,
That I might go
forth and speak with the trump of God,
With a voice to shake the earth,
And cry
repentance unto every people!
2 Yea, I would declare unto every soul, as with the voice of thunder,
Repentance
and the plan of redemption, that they should repent and come unto our God,
That
there might not be more sorrow upon all the face of the earth.
3 But behold, I am a man, and do sin in my wish;
For I ought to be content with
the things which the Lord hath allotted unto me.
4 I ought not to harrow up in my desires, the firm decree of a just God,
For I
know that he granteth unto men according to their desire,
Whether it be unto
death or unto life; yea, I know
That he allotteth unto men, yea, decreeth unto
them decrees which are unalterable,
According to their wills, whether they be
unto salvation or unto destruction.
5 Yea, and I know that good and evil have come before all men;
He that knoweth
not good from evil is blameless;
But he that knoweth good and evil,
To him it is
given according to his desires,
Whether he desireth good or evil, life or death,
Joy or remorse of conscience. Now, seeing that I know these things,
Why should I desire more than to perform
the work to which I have been called?
7 Why should I desire that I were an angel, that I could speak unto all the ends
of the earth?
8 For behold, the Lord doth grant unto all nations, of their own nation and
tongue,
To teach his word, yea, in wisdom, all that he seeth fit that they
should have;
Therefore we see that the Lord doth counsel in wisdom,
According to
that which is just and true.
9 I know that which the Lord hath commanded me, and I glory in it.
I do not
glory of myself, but I glory in that which the Lord hath commanded me;
Yea, and
this is my glory, that perhaps I may be an instrument,
In the hands of God to
bring some soul to repentance;
And this is my joy.
10 And behold, when I see many of my brethren truly penitent,
And coming to the
Lord their God, then is my soul filled with joy;
Then do I remember what the
Lord has done for me, yea, even that he hath heard my prayer;
Yea, then do I
remember his merciful arm which he extended towards me.
11 Yea, and I also remember the captivity of my fathers;
For I surely do know
that the Lord did deliver them out of bondage,
And by this did establish his
church; yea, the Lord God, the God of Abraham,
The God of Isaac, and the God of
Jacob, did deliver them out of bondage.
12 Yea, I have always remembered the captivity of my fathers;
And that same God
who delivered them out of the hands of the Egyptians,
Did deliver them out of
bondage. Yea, and that same God did establish his church among them;
Yea, and that
same God hath called me by a holy calling, to preach the word unto this people,
And hath given me much success, in the which my joy is full.
14 But I do not joy in my own success alone, but my joy is more full,
Because of
the success of my brethren, who have been up to the land of Nephi.
15 Behold, they have labored exceedingly, and have brought forth much fruit;
And
how great shall be their reward!
16 Now, when I think of the success of these my brethren,
My soul is carried
away, even to the separation of it from the body, as it were, so great is my
joy.
17 And now may God grant unto these, my brethren, that they may sit down in the
kingdom of God;
Yea, and also all those who are the fruit of their labors that
they may go no more out,
But that they may praise him forever. And may God grant,
That it may be done according to my words,
Even as I have spoken. Amen.
![]()
ALMA 30
1 Behold, now it came to pass that after the people of Ammon were established in
the land of Jershon,
Yea, and also after the Lamanites were driven out of the
land,
And their dead were buried by the people of the land──
2 Now their dead were not numbered,
Because of the greatness of their
numbers;
Neither were the dead of the Nephites numbered──
But it came to pass
after they had buried their dead,
And also after the days of fasting, and
mourning,
And prayer, (and it was in the sixteenth year,
Of the reign of the
judges over the people of Nephi)
There began to be continual peace throughout
all the land.
3 Yea, and the people did observe to keep the commandments of the Lord;
And they
were strict in observing the ordinances of God, according to the law of Moses;
For they were taught to keep the law of Moses until it should be fulfilled.
4 And thus the people did have no disturbance in all the sixteenth year,
Of the
reign of the judges over the people of Nephi.
5 And it came to pass,
That in the commencement of the seventeenth year,
Of the
reign of the judges, there was continual peace.
6 But it came to pass in the latter end of the seventeenth year,
There came a
man into the land of Zarahemla, and he was Anti-Christ,
For he began to preach
unto the people against the prophecies,
Which had been spoken by the prophets,
concerning the coming of Christ.
7 Now there was no law against a man's belief; for it was strictly contrary,
To
the commands of God that there should be a law,
Which should bring men on to
unequal grounds.
8 For thus saith the scripture:
Choose ye this day, whom ye will serve.
9 Now if a man desired to serve God, it was his privilege;
Or rather, if he
believed in God it was his privilege to serve him;
But if he did not believe in
him there was no law to punish him.
10 But if he murdered he was punished unto death;
And if he robbed he was also
punished;
And if he stole he was also punished;
And if he committed adultery he
was also punished;
Yea, for all this wickedness they were punished.
11 For there was a law that men should be judged according to their crimes.
Nevertheless, there was no law against a man's belief;
Therefore, a man was
punished only for the crimes which he had done;
Therefore all men were on equal
grounds.
12 And this Anti-Christ, whose name was Korihor,
(and the law could have no hold
upon him)
Began to preach unto the people that there should be no Christ.
And
after this manner did he preach, saying:
13 O ye that are bound down,
Under a foolish and a vain hope,
` Why do ye yoke
yourselves with such foolish things?
Why do ye look for a Christ? For no man can
know of anything which is to come.
14 Behold, these things which ye call prophecies, which ye say are handed down
by holy prophets,
Behold, they are foolish traditions of your fathers. How do ye know of their surety?
Behold, ye cannot know of things which ye do
not see; therefore ye cannot know that there shall be a Christ.
16 Ye look forward and say that ye see a remission of your sins.
But behold, it
is the effect of a frenzied mind;
And this derangement of your minds,
Comes
because of the traditions of your fathers,
Which lead you away into a belief of
things which are not so.
17 And many more such things did he say unto them,
Telling them that there could
be no atonement made for the sins of men,
But every man fared in this life
according to the management of the creature;
Therefore every man prospered according to his genius,
And that every man conquered according to his strength;
And whatsoever a man did was no crime.
18 And thus he did preach unto them,
Leading away the hearts of many,
Causing
them to lift up their heads in their wickedness,
Yea, leading away many women,
and also men, to commit whoredoms──
Telling them that when a man was dead, that
was the end thereof.
19 Now this man went over to the land of Jershon also,
To preach these things
among the people of Ammon,
Who were once the people of the Lamanites.
20 But behold they were more wise than many of the Nephites;
For they took him,
and bound him, and carried him before Ammon, who was a high priest over that
people.
21 And it came to pass that he caused that he should be carried out of the land.
And he came over into the land of Gideon, and began to preach unto them also;
And here he did not have much success, for he was taken and bound,
And carried
before the high priest,
And also the chief judge over the land.
22 And it came to pass that the high priest said unto him:
Why do ye go about perverting the ways of the Lord?
Why do ye teach this people,
That there shall be no Christ to interrupt their rejoicings?
Why do ye speak against all the
prophecies of the holy prophets?
23 Now the high priest's name was Giddonah. And Korihor said unto him:
Because I
do not teach the foolish traditions of your fathers,
And because I do not teach
this people,
To bind themselves down under the foolish ordinances and
performances,
Which are laid down by ancient priests, to usurp power and
authority over them,
To keep them in ignorance, that they may not lift up their
heads,
But be brought down according to thy words.
24 Ye say that this people is a free people.
Behold, I say they are in bondage.
Ye say that those ancient prophecies are true.
Behold, I say that ye do not know
that they are true.
25 Ye say that this people is a guilty and a fallen people,
Because of the
transgression of a parent. Behold, I say,
That a child is not guilty because of
its parents.
26 And ye also say that Christ shall come.
But behold, I say,
That ye do not know
that there shall be a Christ.
And ye say also that he shall be slain for the
sins of the world──
27 And thus ye lead away this people after the foolish traditions of your
fathers,
And according to your own desires; and ye keep them down, even as it
were in bondage,
That ye may glut yourselves with the labors of their hands,
That they durst not look up with boldness,
And that they durst not enjoy their
rights and privileges.
28 Yea, they durst not make use of that which is their own,
Lest they should
offend their priests, who do yoke them according to their desires,
And have
brought them to believe by their traditions and their dreams,
And their whims
and their visions and their pretended mysteries,
That they should, if they did
not do according to their words,
Offend some unknown being, who they say is
God──
A being who never has been seen or known, who never was nor ever will be.
29 Now when the high priest and the chief judge saw the hardness of his heart,
Yea, when they saw that he would revile even against God,
They would not make
any reply to his words;
But they caused that he should be bound;
And they
delivered him up into the hands of the officers,
And sent him to
the land of Zarahemla, that he might be brought before Alma,
And the chief judge who was
governor over all the land.
30 And it came to pass that when he was brought before Alma and the chief judge,
He did go on in the same manner as he did in the land of Gideon; yea, he went on
to blaspheme.
31 He did rise up in great swelling words before Alma, and did revile
against the priests and teachers,
Accusing them of leading away the people after
the silly traditions of their fathers,
For the sake of glutting on the labors of
the people. Now Alma said unto him:
Thou knowest that we do not glut ourselves upon the
labors of this people;
For behold I have labored even from the commencement,
Of
the reign of the judges until now,
With mine own hands for my support, notwithstanding.
My many travels round about the land to declare the word of God
unto my people.
33 And notwithstanding the many labors which I have performed in the church,
I
have never received so much as even one senine for my labor;
Neither has any of
my brethren, save it were in the judgment-seat;
And then we have received only according to law for our time.
34 And now, if we do not receive anything for our labors in the church,
What
doth it profit us to labor in the church,
Save it were to declare the truth,
That
we may have rejoicings in the joy of our brethren?
35 Then why sayest thou that we preach unto this people to get gain,
When thou,
of thyself, knowest that we receive no gain?
And now, believest thou that we
deceive this people,
That causes such joy in their hearts?
36 And Korihor answered him, Yea.
37 And then Alma said unto him:
Believest thou that there is a God?
38 And he answered, Nay. Now Alma said unto him:
Will ye deny again that there is a God, and also deny
the Christ?
For behold, I say unto you, I know there is a God, and also that
Christ shall come.
40 And now what evidence have ye that there is no God, or that Christ cometh
not?
I say unto you that ye have none, save it be your word only.
41 But, behold, I have all things as a testimony,
That these things are true;
And
ye also have all things as a testimony,
Unto you that they are true, and will ye
deny them?
Believest thou that these things are true?
42 Behold, I know that thou believest,
But thou art possessed with a lying
spirit,
And ye have put off the Spirit of God that it may have no place in you;
But the devil has power over you, and he doth carry you about,
Working devices
that he may destroy the children of God.
43 And now Korihor said unto Alma:
If thou wilt show me a sign, that I may be
convinced that there is a God,
Yea, show unto me that he hath power, and then
will I be convinced of the truth of thy words.
44 But Alma said unto him: Thou hast had signs enough; will ye tempt your God?
Will ye say, Show unto me a sign, when ye have the testimony of all these thy
brethren,
And also all the holy prophets? The scriptures are laid before thee,
Yea, and all things denote there is a God;
Yea, even the earth,
And all things
that are upon the face of it,
Yea, and its motion, yea, and also all the planets,
Which move in their regular form do witness that there is a Supreme Creator.
45 And yet do ye go about, leading away the hearts of this people, testifying
unto them there is no God?
And yet will ye deny against all these witnesses? And
he said:
Yea, I will deny, except ye shall show me a sign.
46 And now it came to pass that Alma said unto him:
Behold, I am grieved because
of the hardness of your heart,
Yea, that ye will still resist the spirit of the truth, that thy soul may be destroyed.
47 But behold, it is better that thy soul should be lost than that thou shouldst
be the means,
Of bringing many souls down to destruction, by thy lying and by thy
flattering words;
Therefore if thou shalt deny again, behold God shall smite
thee,
That thou shalt become dumb,
That thou shalt never open thy mouth any more,
That thou shalt not deceive this people any more.
48 Now Korihor said unto him: I do not deny the existence of a God,
But I do not
believe that there is a God; and I say also,
That ye do not know that there is a
God;
And except ye show me a sign, I will not believe.
49 Now Alma said unto him: This will I give unto thee for a sign,
That thou
shalt be struck dumb, according to my words;
And I say, that in the name of God,
Ye shall be struck dumb,
That ye shall no more have utterance.
50 Now when Alma had said these words, Korihor was struck dumb,
That he could
not have utterance, according to the words of Alma.
51 And now when the chief judge saw this, he put forth his hand and wrote unto
Korihor, saying:
Art thou convinced of the power of God? In whom did ye desire
that Alma should show forth his sign?
Would ye that he should afflict others, to
show unto thee a sign?
Behold, he has showed unto you a sign;
And now will ye
dispute more?
52 And Korihor put forth his hand and wrote,
Saying: I know that I am dumb, for
I cannot speak;
And I know that nothing save it were the power of God,
Could
bring this upon me; yea, and I always knew that there was a God.
53 But behold, the devil hath deceived me; for he appeared unto me in the form
of an angel,
And said unto me: Go and reclaim this people, for they have
all gone astray after an unknown God.
And he said unto me: There is no God; yea, and
he taught me that which I should say.
And I have taught his words; and I taught
them because they were pleasing unto the carnal mind;
And I taught them, even
until I had much success, insomuch that I verily believed that they were true;
And for this cause I withstood the truth, even until I have brought this great
curse upon me.
54 Now when he had said this, he besought that Alma should pray unto God,
That the curse
might be taken from him.
55 But Alma said unto him:
If this curse should be taken from thee,
Thou wouldst
again lead away the hearts of this people;
Therefore, it shall be unto thee
even as the Lord will.
56 And it came to pass that the curse was not taken off of Korihor;
But he was
cast out, and went about from house to house begging for his food.
57 Now the knowledge of what had happened unto Korihor was immediately published
throughout all the land;
Yea, the proclamation was sent forth by the chief judge
to all the people in the land,
Declaring unto those who had believed in the
words of Korihor,
That they must speedily repent, lest the same judgments would come unto them.
58 And it came to pass that they were all convinced of the wickedness of Korihor;
Therefore they were all converted again unto the Lord;
And this put an end to
the iniquity after the manner of Korihor.
And Korihor did go about from house to
house, begging food for his support.
59 And it came to pass that as he went forth among the people, yea, among a
people,
Who had separated themselves from the Nephites and called themselves
Zoramites,
Being led by a man whose name was Zoram──and as he went forth amongst
them,
Behold, he was run upon and trodden down, even until he was dead.
60 And thus we see the end of him who perverteth the ways of the Lord;
And thus
we see that the devil will not support his children,
At the last day, but doth
speedily drag them down to hell.
![]()
ALMA 31
1 NOW it came to pass that after the end of Korihor,
Alma having received
tidings that the Zoramites were perverting the ways of the Lord,
And that Zoram,
who was their leader, was leading the hearts of the people to bow down to dumb
idols,
His heart again began to sicken because of the iniquity of the people.
2 For it was the cause of great sorrow to Alma to know of iniquity among
his people;
Therefore his heart was exceedingly sorrowful because of the
separation of the Zoramites from the Nephites.
3 Now the Zoramites had gathered themselves together in a land which they called Antionum,
Which was east of the land of Zarahemla, which lay nearly bordering
upon the seashore,
Which was south of the land of Jershon, which also bordered
upon the wilderness south,
Which wilderness was full of the Lamanites.
4 Now the Nephites greatly feared,
That the Zoramites would enter into a
correspondence with the Lamanites,
And that it would be the means of great loss on the part of the Nephites.
5 And now, as the preaching of the word had a great tendency to lead the people
to do that which was just──
Yea, it had had more powerful effect upon the minds
of the people than the sword,
Or anything else, which had happened unto
them──
Therefore Alma thought it was expedient,
That they should try the virtue of
the word of God.
6 Therefore he took Ammon, and Aaron, and Omner;
And Himni he did leave in the
church in Zarahemla;
But the former three he took with him,
And also Amulek and
Zeezrom,
Who were at Melek; and he also took two of his sons.
7 Now the eldest of his sons he took not with him, and his name was Helaman;
But
the names of those whom he took with him were Shiblon and Corianton;
And these
are the names of those who went with him among the Zoramites, to preach unto
them the word.
8 Now the Zoramites were dissenters from the Nephites; therefore they had had
the word of God preached unto them.
9 But they had fallen into great errors, for they would not observe to keep the
commandments of God,
And his statutes, according to the law of Moses.
10 Neither would they observe the performances of the church,
To continue in
prayer and supplication to God daily, that they might not enter into temptation.
11 Yea, in fine, they did pervert the ways of the Lord in very many instances;
Therefore, for this cause, Alma and his brethren went into the land to preach
the word unto them.
12 Now, when they had come into the land, behold, to their astonishment,
They
found that the Zoramites had built synagogues,
And that they did gather
themselves together,
On one day of the week, which day they did call the day of
the Lord;
And they did worship after a manner which Alma and his brethren had
never beheld;
13 For they had a place built up in the center of their synagogue, a place for
standing,
Which was high above the head; and the top thereof would only admit
one person.
14 Therefore, whosoever desired to worship must go forth and stand upon the top
thereof,
And stretch forth his hands towards heaven, and cry with a loud voice,
saying:
15 Holy, holy God; we believe that thou art God, and we believe that thou art
holy,
And that thou wast a spirit, and that thou art a spirit,
And that thou
wilt be a spirit forever.
16 Holy God, we believe,
That thou hast separated us from our brethren;
And we do
not believe in the tradition of our brethren,
Which was handed down to them by
the childishness of their fathers;
But we do believe that thou hast elected us to
be thy holy children;
And also thou hast made it known unto us that there shall
be no Christ.
17 But thou art the same yesterday, today, and forever; and thou hast elected us
that we shall be saved,
Whilst all around us are elected to be cast by thy wrath
down to hell;
For the which holiness, O God, we thank thee;
And we also thank
thee that thou hast elected us,
That we may not be led away,
After the foolish
traditions of our brethren,
Which doth bind them down to a belief of Christ,
Which doth lead their hearts to wander far from thee, our God.
18 And again we thank thee, O God, that we are a chosen and a holy people. Amen.
19 Now it came to pass that after Alma and his brethren and his sons had heard
these prayers,
They were astonished beyond all measure. For behold, every man did go forth,
And offer up the same prayers. Now the place was called by them Rameumptom,
Which, being interpreted, is the
holy stand.
22 Now, from this stand they did offer up,
Every man, the selfsame prayer unto
God, thanking their God,
That they were chosen of him, and that he did not lead
them away after the tradition of their brethren,
And that their hearts were not
stolen away to believe in things to come, which they knew nothing about.
23 Now, after the people had all offered up thanks after this manner, they
returned to their homes,
Never speaking of their God again until they had
assembled themselves together again,
To the holy stand, to offer up thanks after
their manner.
24 Now when Alma saw this his heart was grieved;
For he saw that they were a
wicked and a perverse people;
Yea, he saw that their hearts were set upon gold,
and upon silver, and upon all manner of fine goods.
25 Yea, and he also saw that their hearts were lifted up unto great boasting, in
their pride.
26 And he lifted up his voice to heaven, and cried, saying: O, how long, O Lord,
wilt thou suffer,
That thy servants shall dwell here below in the flesh,
To
behold such gross wickedness among the children of men?
27 Behold, O God, they cry unto thee, and yet their hearts are swallowed up in
their pride.
Behold, O God, they cry unto thee with their mouths, while they are
puffed up,
Even to greatness, with the vain things of the world.
28 Behold, O my God, their costly apparel,
And their ringlets,
And
their bracelets, and their ornaments of gold,
And all their precious things which they
are ornamented with;
And behold, their hearts are set upon them, and yet they
cry unto thee and say──
We thank thee, O God, for we are a chosen people unto
thee, while others shall perish.
29 Yea, and they say that thou hast made it known unto them that there shall be
no Christ.
30 O Lord God, how long wilt thou suffer that such wickedness and infidelity
shall be among this people?
O Lord, wilt thou give me strength, that I may bear with mine infirmities.
For I am infirm, and such wickedness among this people
doth pain my soul.
31 O Lord, my heart is exceedingly sorrowful;
Wilt thou comfort my soul in
Christ.
O Lord, wilt thou grant unto me,
That I may have strength,
That I may
suffer with patience these afflictions,
Which shall come upon us, because of the
iniquity of this people.
O Lord, wilt thou comfort my soul, and give unto me success,
And also my
fellow laborers who are with me──
Yea, Ammon, and Aaron, and Omner, and also
Amulek and Zeezrom and also my two sons──
Yea, even all these wilt thou comfort,
O Lord. Yea, wilt thou comfort their souls in Christ.
33 Wilt thou grant unto them that they may have strength,
That they may bear
their afflictions which shall come upon them,
Because of the iniquities of this
people.
34 O Lord, wilt thou grant unto us,
That we may have success in bringing them
again unto thee in Christ.
35 Behold, O Lord, their souls are precious, and many of them are our brethren;
Therefore, give unto us, O Lord, power and wisdom that we may bring these, our
brethren, again unto thee.
36 Now it came to pass when Alma had said these words, that he clapped his
hands upon all them who were with him;
And behold, as he clapped his hands upon
them, they were filled with the Holy Spirit.
37 And after that they did separate themselves one from another,
Taking no thought for themselves what they should eat,
Or what they should drink, or what
they should put on.
38 And the Lord provided for them that they should hunger not, neither should
they thirst;
Yea, and he also gave them strength that they should suffer no
manner of afflictions,
Save it were swallowed up in the joy of Christ.
Now this
was according to the prayer of Alma;
And this because he prayed in faith.
![]()
ALMA 32
1 AND it came to pass that they did go forth,
And began to preach the word of
God unto the people,
Entering into their synagogues, and into their houses;
Yea,
and even they did preach the word in their streets.
2 And it came to pass that after much labor among them,
They began to have
success among the poor class of people;
For behold, they were cast out of the
synagogues,
Because of the coarseness of their apparel──
3 Therefore they were not permitted,
To enter into their synagogues to worship
God,
Being esteemed as filthiness; therefore they were poor;
Yea, they were
esteemed by their brethren as dross;
Therefore they were poor as to
things of the world;
And also they were poor in heart.
4 Now, as Alma was teaching, and speaking unto the people upon the hill Onidah,
There came a great multitude unto him, who were those of whom we have been
speaking,
Of whom were poor in heart, because of their poverty as to the things
of the world.
5 And they came unto Alma; and the one who was the foremost among them said unto
him:
Behold, what shall these my brethren do, for they are despised of all men,
Because of their poverty, yea, and more especially by our priests;
For they have
cast us out of our synagogues,
Which we have labored abundantly to build with our
own hands;
And they have cast us out because of our exceeding poverty;
And we
have no place to worship our God; and behold, what shall we do?
6 And now when Alma heard this, he turned him about, his face immediately
towards him,
And he beheld with great joy; for he beheld that their afflictions
had truly humbled them,
And that they were in a preparation to hear the word.
7 Therefore he did say no more to the other multitude;
But he stretched forth
his hand,
And cried unto those whom he beheld,
Who were truly penitent, and said
unto them:
8 I behold that ye are lowly in heart; and if so,
Blessed are ye. Behold thy brother hath said, What shall we do?──
For we are cast out of our
synagogues, that we cannot worship our God.
10 Behold I say unto you, do ye suppose that ye cannot worship God save it be in
your synagogues only?
11 And moreover, I would ask, do ye suppose that ye must not worship God only
once in a week?
12 I say unto you, it is well that ye are cast out of your synagogues,
That ye
may be humble, and that ye may learn wisdom;
For it is necessary that ye should
learn wisdom;
For it is because that ye are cast out,
That ye are despised of
your brethren,
Because of your exceeding poverty,
That ye are brought to a
lowliness of heart;
For ye are necessarily brought to be humble.
13 And now, because ye are compelled to be humble blessed are ye;
For a man
sometimes, if he is compelled to be humble, seeketh repentance;
And now surely,
whosoever repenteth shall find mercy;
And he that findeth mercy and endureth to
the end the same shall be saved.
14 And now, as I said unto you, that because ye were compelled to be humble ye
were blessed,
Do ye not suppose that they are more blessed who truly humble
themselves because of the word?
15 Yea, he that truly humbleth himself, and repenteth of his sins, and endureth
to the end, the same shall be blessed──
Yea, much more blessed than they who are
compelled to be humble because of their exceeding poverty.
16 Therefore, blessed are they who humble themselves without being compelled to
be humble;
Or rather, in other words, blessed is he that believeth in the word
of God,
And is baptized without stubbornness of heart,
Yea, without being
brought to know the word,
Or even compelled to know,
Before they will believe.
17 Yea, there are many who do say:
If thou wilt show unto us a sign from heaven,
Then we shall know of a surety; then we shall believe.
18 Now I ask, is this faith? Behold, I say unto you, Nay;
For if a man knoweth a
thing he hath no cause to believe, for he knoweth it.
19 And now, how much more cursed is he that knoweth the will of God and doeth it
not,
Than he that only believeth, or only hath cause to believe, and falleth
into transgression?
20 Now of this thing ye must judge. Behold, I say unto you, that it is on the
one hand,
Even as it is on the other; and it shall be unto every man according to
his work.
21 And now as I said concerning faith──faith is not to have a perfect knowledge
of things;
Therefore if ye have faith ye hope for things which are not seen,
which are true.
22 And now, behold, I say unto you, and I would that ye should remember,
That
God is merciful unto all who believe on his name;
Therefore he desireth, in the
first place,
That ye should believe, yea, even on his word.
23 And now, he imparteth his word by angels unto men,
Yea, not only men but
women also. Now this is not all;
Little children do have words given unto them
many times,
Which confound the wise and the learned. And now, my beloved brethren,
As ye have desired to know of me what ye shall
do because ye are afflicted and cast out──
Now I do not desire that ye should
suppose that I mean to judge you only according to that which is true──
25 For I do not mean that ye all of you have been compelled to humble
yourselves; for I verily believe,
That there are some among you that would humble
themselves,
Let them be in whatsoever circumstances they might.
26 Now, as I said concerning faith──that it was not a perfect knowledge──
Even so it is with my words. Ye cannot know of their surety at first,
Unto perfection, any more than faith is a perfect knowledge.
27 But behold, if ye will awake and arouse your faculties,
Even to an experiment
upon my words,
And exercise a particle of faith,
Yea, even if ye can no more
than desire to believe,
Let this desire work in you, even until ye believe in a
manner,
That ye can give place for a portion of my words.
28 Now, we will compare the word unto a seed.
Now, if ye give place, that a seed
may be planted in your heart,
Behold, if it be a true seed, or a good seed, if
ye do not cast it out by your unbelief,
That ye will not resist the Spirit of the Lord, behold, it will begin to swell within your breasts;
And when you feel
these swelling motions, ye will begin to say within yourselves──
It must needs be that this is a good seed, or that the word is good, for it beginneth to enlarge
my soul;
Yea, it beginneth to enlighten my understanding, yea, it beginneth to
be delicious to me.
29 Now behold, would not this increase your faith? I say unto you, Yea;
Nevertheless it hath not grown up to a perfect knowledge.
30 But behold, as the seed swelleth,
And sprouteth, and beginneth to grow,
Then
you must needs say that the seed is good;
For behold it swelleth, and sprouteth,
and beginneth to grow.
And now, behold, will not this strengthen your faith?
Yea, it will strengthen your faith:
For ye will say I know that this is a good
seed; for behold it sprouteth and beginneth to grow.
31 And now, behold, are ye sure that this is a good seed? I say unto you, Yea;
For every seed bringeth forth unto its own likeness.
32 Therefore, if a seed groweth it is good,
But if it groweth not, behold it is
not good, therefore it is cast away.
33 And now, behold, because ye have tried the experiment, and planted the seed,
And it swelleth and sprouteth, and beginneth to grow,
Ye must needs know that
the seed is good.
34 And now, behold, is your knowledge perfect?
Yea, your knowledge is perfect in
that thing,
And your faith is dormant; and this because you know;
For ye know
that the word hath swelled your souls, and ye also know,
That it hath sprouted
up, that your understanding doth begin to be enlightened,
And your mind doth
begin to expand.
35 O then, is not this real? I say unto you, Yea, because it is light;
And
whatsoever is light, is good, because it is discernible,
Therefore ye must know
that it is good; and now behold,
After ye have tasted this light is your
knowledge perfect?
36 Behold I say unto you, Nay;
Neither must ye lay aside your faith,
For ye have
only exercised your faith to plant the seed,
That ye might try the experiment to
know if the seed was good.
37 And behold, as the tree beginneth to grow, ye will say:
Let us nourish it
with great care, that it may get root,
That it may grow up, and bring forth
fruit unto us.
And now behold, if ye nourish it with much care,
It will get root,
and grow up, and bring forth fruit.
38 But if ye neglect the tree, and take no thought for its nourishment,
Behold
it will not get any root; and when the heat of the sun cometh and scorcheth it,
Because it hath no root it withers away, and ye pluck it up and cast it out.
39 Now, this is not because the seed was not good,
Neither is it because the
fruit thereof would not be desirable;
But it is because your ground is barren,
and ye will not nourish the tree,
Therefore ye cannot have the fruit thereof. And thus, if ye will not nourish the word,
Looking forward with an eye of
faith to the fruit thereof,
Ye can never pluck of the fruit of the tree of life.
41 But if ye will nourish the word,
Yea, nourish the tree as it beginneth to
grow,
By your faith with great diligence, and with patience,
Looking forward to
the fruit thereof, it shall take root;
And behold it shall be a tree springing
up unto everlasting life.
42 And because of your diligence and your faith and your patience,
With the word in nourishing it, that it may take root in you,
Behold, by and by ye shall pluck
the fruit thereof, which is most precious,
Which is sweet above all that is
sweet, and which is white above all that is white,
Yea, and pure above all that
is pure; and ye shall feast upon this fruit,
Even until ye are filled, that ye
hunger not, neither shall ye thirst.
43 Then, my brethren, ye shall reap the rewards of your faith,
And your
diligence, and patience, and long-suffering,
Waiting for the tree to bring forth
fruit unto you.
![]()
ALMA 33
1 NOW after Alma had spoken these words,
They sent forth unto him desiring to
know whether they should believe in one God,
That they might obtain this fruit
of which he had spoken, or how they should plant the seed,
Or the word of which he had spoken, which he said must be planted in their hearts;
Or in what manner
they should begin to exercise their faith.
2 And Alma said unto them: Behold, ye have said,
That ye could not worship
your God,
Because ye are cast out of your synagogues.
But behold, I say unto
you, if ye suppose that ye cannot worship God,
Ye do greatly err, and ye ought to search the scriptures;
If ye suppose that they have taught you this,
Ye do not understand
them.
3 Do ye remember to have read what Zenos,
The prophet of old, has said
concerning prayer or worship?
4 For he said: Thou art merciful, O God, for thou hast heard my prayer,
Even when I was in the wilderness; yea, thou wast merciful when I prayed,
Concerning those who were
mine enemies, and thou didst turn them to me.
5 Yea, O God, and thou wast merciful unto me when I did cry unto thee in
my field;
When I did cry unto thee in my prayer, and thou didst hear me.
6 And again, O God, when I did turn to my house,
Thou didst hear me in my prayer.
7 And when I did turn unto my closet,
O Lord, and prayed unto thee, thou didst hear me.
8 Yea, thou art merciful unto thy children when they cry unto thee,
To be heard of thee and not of men, and thou wilt hear them.
9 Yea, O God, thou hast been merciful unto me,
And heard my cries in the midst of thy congregations.
10 Yea, and thou hast also heard me,
When I have been cast out,
And
have been despised by mine enemies;
Yea, thou didst hear my cries, and wast angry with
mine enemies,
And thou didst visit them in thine anger with speedy destruction.
11 And thou didst hear me because of mine afflictions and my sincerity;
And it
is because of thy Son that thou hast been thus merciful unto me,
Therefore I
will cry unto thee in all mine afflictions, for in thee is my joy;
For thou hast
turned thy judgments away from me, because of thy Son.
12 And now Alma said unto them: Do ye believe those scriptures,
Which have been
written by them of old?
13 Behold, if ye do, ye must believe what Zenos said;
For, behold he said: Thou
hast turned away thy judgments because of thy Son.
14 Now behold, my brethren, I would ask if ye have read the scriptures?
If ye
have, how can ye disbelieve on the Son of God?
15 For it is not written that Zenos alone,
Spake of these things, but Zenock also
spake of these things──
16 For behold, he said: Thou art angry, O Lord, with this people,
Because they
will not understand thy mercies, which thou hast bestowed upon them because of
thy Son.
17 And now, my brethren, ye see that a second prophet of old has testified of
the Son of God,
And because the people would not understand his words they
stoned him to death.
18 But behold, this is not all; these are not the only ones,
Who have spoken
concerning the Son of God.
19 Behold, he was spoken of by Moses;
Yea, and behold a type was raised up in
the wilderness,
That whosoever would look upon it might live. And many did look
and live.
20 But few understood the meaning of those things, and this because of the
hardness of their hearts.
But there were many who were so hardened that they
would not look, therefore they perished.
Now the reason they would not look is
because they did not believe that it would heal them.
21 O my brethren, if ye could be healed by merely casting about your eyes that
ye might be healed,
Would ye not behold quickly, or would ye rather harden your
hearts in unbelief,
And be slothful, that ye would not cast about your eyes,
that ye might perish?
22 If so, wo shall come upon you;
But if not so, then cast about your eyes and
begin to believe in the Son of God,
That he will come to redeem his people, and
that he shall suffer and die to atone for their sins;
And that he shall rise
again from the dead, which shall bring to pass the resurrection,
That all men
shall stand before him, to be judged at the last and judgment day, according to
their works.
23 And now, my brethren, I desire that ye shall plant this word in your hearts,
And as it beginneth to swell, even so nourish it by your faith.
And behold, it
will become a tree springing up in you unto everlasting life.
And then may God
grant unto you that your burdens may be light through the joy of his Son.
And
even all this can ye do if ye will. Amen.
![]()
ALMA 34
1 AND now it came to pass that after Alma had spoken these words unto them,
He
sat down upon the ground, and Amulek arose and began to teach them, saying:
2 My brethren, I think that it is impossible that ye should be ignorant of the
things,
Which have been spoken concerning the coming of Christ,
Who is taught by
us to be the Son of God;
Yea, I know that these things were taught unto you
bountifully,
Before your dissension from among us, and as ye have desired of my beloved brother,
That he should make known unto you what ye should do because of your afflictions;
And he hath spoken somewhat
unto you to prepare your minds;
Yea, and he hath exhorted you unto faith and
to patience──
4 Yea, even that ye would have so much faith,
As even to plant the word in your
hearts,
That ye may try the experiment of its goodness.
5 And we have beheld that the great question which is in your minds,
Is whether
the word be in the Son of God, or whether there shall be no Christ.
6 And ye also beheld that my brother has proved unto you, in many instances,
That the word is in Christ unto salvation.
7 My brother has called upon the words of Zenos,
That redemption cometh through
the Son of God,
And also upon the words of Zenock;
And also he has appealed unto Moses, to prove that these things are true.
8 And now, behold, I will testify unto you of myself that these things are true.
Behold, I say unto you, that I do know that Christ shall come among the children
of men,
To take upon him the transgressions of his people, and that he shall
atone for the sins of the world;
For the Lord God hath spoken it. For it is expedient that an atonement
should be made;
For according to the
great plan of the Eternal God there must be an atonement made,
Or else all
mankind must unavoidably perish; yea, all are hardened; yea, all are fallen and
are lost,
And must perish except it be through the atonement which it is
expedient should be made.
10 For it is expedient that there should be a great and last sacrifice;
Yea, not
a sacrifice of man, neither of beast,
Neither of any manner of fowl;
For it
shall not be a human sacrifice;
But it must be an infinite and eternal
sacrifice.
11 Now there is not any man that can sacrifice his own blood,
Which will atone
for the sins of another. Now, if a man murdereth,
Behold will our law, which is
just, take the life of his brother? I say unto you, Nay.
12 But the law requireth the life of him who hath murdered; therefore there can
be nothing,
Which is short of an infinite atonement which will suffice for the
sins of the world.
13 Therefore, it is expedient that there should be a great and last sacrifice,
And then shall there be, or it is expedient there should be,
A stop to the
shedding of blood; then shall the law of Moses be fulfilled;
Yea, it shall be
all fulfilled, every jot and tittle, and none shall have passed away.
14 And behold, this is the whole meaning of the law, every whit pointing to that
great and last sacrifice;
And that great and last sacrifice will be the Son of
God, yea, infinite and eternal.
15 And thus he shall bring salvation to all those who shall believe on his name;
This being the intent of this last sacrifice, to bring about the bowels of
mercy,
Which overpowereth justice, and bringeth about means unto men that they
may have faith unto repentance.
16 And thus mercy can satisfy the demands of justice, and encircles them in the
arms of safety,
While he that exercises no faith unto repentance is exposed to
the whole law of the demands of justice;
Therefore only unto him that has faith
unto repentance,
Is brought about the great and eternal plan of redemption.
17 Therefore may God grant unto you, my brethren,
That ye may begin to exercise
your faith unto repentance,
That ye begin to call upon his holy name, that he
would have mercy upon you;
18 Yea, cry unto him for mercy; for he is mighty to save.
19 Yea, humble yourselves, and continue in prayer unto him.
20 Cry unto him when ye are in your fields, yea, over all your flocks.
21 Cry unto him in your houses, yea, over all your household, both morning,
mid-day, and evening.
22 Yea, cry unto him against the power of your enemies.
23 Yea, cry unto him against the devil, who is an enemy to all righteousness.
24 Cry unto him over the crops of your fields, that ye may prosper in them.
25 Cry over the flocks of your fields, that they may increase.
26 But this is not all; ye must pour out your souls,
In your closets, and your
secret places, and in your wilderness.
27 Yea, and when you do not cry unto the Lord, let your hearts be full,
Drawn
out in prayer unto him continually for your welfare,
And also for the welfare of
those who are around you.
28 And now behold, my beloved brethren,
I say unto you, do not suppose that this
is all;
For after ye have done all these things, if ye turn away the needy,
And
the naked, and visit not the sick and afflicted, and impart of your substance,
If ye have, to those who stand in need──I say unto you, if ye do not any of
these things,
Behold, your prayer is vain, and availeth you nothing,
And ye are
as hypocrites who do deny the faith.
29 Therefore, if ye do not remember to be charitable, ye are as dross,
Which the
refiners do cast out, (it being of no worth) and is trodden under foot of men.
30 And now, my brethren, I would that, after ye have received so many witnesses,
Seeing that the holy scriptures testify of these things,
Ye come forth and bring
fruit unto repentance.
31 Yea, I would that ye would come forth,
And harden not your hearts any longer;
For behold, now is the time and the day of your salvation;
And therefore, if ye
will repent and harden not your hearts,
Immediately shall the great plan of
redemption be brought about unto you.
32 For behold, this life is the time for men to prepare to meet God;
Yea, behold
the day of this life is the day for men to perform their labors.
33 And now, as I said unto you before, as ye have had so many witnesses,
Therefore, I beseech of you that ye do not procrastinate,
The day of your
repentance until the end;
For after this day of life,
Which is given us to
prepare for eternity,
Behold, if we do not improve our time while in this life,
Then cometh the night of darkness wherein there can be no labor performed.
34 Ye cannot say, when ye are brought to that awful crisis, that I will repent,
That I will return to my God. Nay, ye cannot say this; for that same spirit,
Which doth possess your bodies at the time that ye go out of this life,
That
same spirit will have power to possess your body in that eternal world.
35 For behold, if ye have procrastinated the day of your repentance even until death,
Behold, ye have become subjected to the spirit of the devil, and he doth
seal you his;
Therefore, the Spirit of the Lord hath withdrawn from you, and
hath no place in you,
And the devil hath all power over you; and this is the
final state of the wicked.
36 And this I know, because the Lord hath said he dwelleth not in unholy
temples,
But in the hearts of the righteous doth he dwell; yea, and he has also
said,
That the righteous shall sit down in his kingdom, to go no more out;
But
their garments should be made white through the blood of the Lamb.
37 And now, my beloved brethren, I desire that ye should remember these things,
And that ye should work out your salvation with fear before God,
And that ye
should no more deny the coming of Christ;
38 That ye contend no more against the Holy Ghost,
But that ye receive it,
And
take upon you the name of Christ;
That ye humble yourselves even to the dust,
and worship God,
In whatsoever place ye may be in, in spirit and in truth;
And
that ye live in thanksgiving daily, for the many mercies and blessings which he
doth bestow upon you.
39 Yea, and I also exhort you, my brethren, that ye be watchful unto prayer continually,
That ye may not be led away by the temptations of the devil,
That
he may not overpower you,
That ye may not become his subjects at the last day;
For behold, he rewardeth you no good thing.
40 And now my beloved brethren,
I would exhort you to have patience,
And that ye
bear with all manner of afflictions;
That ye do not revile against those who do
cast you out,
Because of your exceeding poverty, lest ye become sinners like unto
them;
41 But that ye have patience, and bear with those afflictions, with a firm hope,
That ye shall one day rest from all your afflictions.
![]()
ALMA 35
1 NOW it came to pass that after Amulek had made an end of these words,
They
withdrew themselves from the multitude and came over into the land of Jershon.
2 Yea, and the rest of the brethren, after they had preached the word unto the
Zoramites,
Also came over into the land of Jershon.
3 And it came to pass that after the more popular part of the Zoramites,
Had
consulted together concerning the words which had been preached unto them,
They
were angry because of the word, for it did destroy their craft;
Therefore they
would not hearken unto the words.
4 And they sent and gathered together throughout all the land,
All the people, and consulted with them concerning the words which
had been spoken,
5 Now their rulers and their priests and their teachers did not let the people
know concerning their desires;
Therefore they found out privily the minds of all
the people.
6 And it came to pass that after they had found out the minds of all the people,
Those who were in favor of the words which had been spoken by Alma and his
brethren,
Were cast out of the land; and they were many; and they came over
also into the land of Jershon.
7 And it came to pass that Alma and his brethren did minister unto them.
8 Now the people of the Zoramites were angry with the people of Ammon,
Who were
in Jershon, and the chief ruler of the Zoramites,
Being a very wicked man, sent
over unto the people of Ammon,
Desiring them that they should cast out of their
land,
All those who came over from them into their land.
9 And he breathed out many threatenings against them.
And now the people of
Ammon did not fear their words;
Therefore they did not cast them out,
But they
did receive all the poor,
Of the Zoramites that came over unto them;
And they did
nourish them, and did clothe them,
And did give unto them lands for their
inheritance;
And they did administer unto them according to their wants.
10 Now this did stir up the Zoramites to anger against the people of Ammon,
And
they began to mix with the Lamanites and to stir them up also to anger against
them.
11 And thus the Zoramites and the Lamanites began to make preparations for war,
Against the people of Ammon, and also against the Nephites.
12 And thus ended the seventeenth year,
Of the reign of the judges over the
people of Nephi.
13 And the people of Ammon departed out of the land of Jershon,
And came over
into the land of Melek, and gave place in the land of Jershon,
For the armies of
the Nephites, that they might contend with the armies of the Lamanites,
And the
armies of the Zoramites; and thus commenced a war betwixt the Lamanites and the
Nephites,
In the eighteenth year of the reign of the judges; and an account
shall be given of their wars hereafter.
14 And Alma, and Ammon, and their brethren, and also the two sons of Alma
returned to the land of Zarahemla,
After having been instruments in the hands of
God of bringing many of the Zoramites to repentance;
And as many as were brought
to repentance were driven out of their land;
But they have lands for their
inheritance in the land of Jershon,
And they have taken up arms to defend
themselves,
And their wives, and children, and their lands.
15 Now Alma, being grieved for the iniquity of his people,
Yea for the wars, and
the bloodsheds, and the contentions which were among them;
And having been to
declare the word, or sent to declare the word, among all the people in every
city;
And seeing that the hearts of the people began to wax hard, and that they
began to be offended,
Because of the strictness of the word, his heart was
exceedingly sorrowful.
16 Therefore, he caused that his sons should be gathered together,
That he might
give unto them every one his charge, separately,
Concerning the things
pertaining unto righteousness.
And we have an account of his commandments,
Which
he gave unto them according to his own record.
![]()
ALMA 36
1 MY son, give ear to my words; for I swear unto you,
That inasmuch as ye
shall keep the commandments of God ye shall prosper in the land.
2 I would that ye should do as I have done, in remembering the captivity
of our fathers;
For they were in bondage, and none could deliver them,
Except it was
the God of Abraham,
` And the God of Isaac, and the God of Jacob;
And he surely did deliver
them in their afflictions.
3 And now, O my son Helaman, behold, thou art in thy youth,
And therefore, I beseech of thee that thou wilt hear my words and
learn of me;
For I do know that whosoever shall put their trust in God shall be
supported in their trials,
And their troubles, and their afflictions, and shall be lifted up
at the last day.
4 And I would not that ye think that I know of myself──
Not of the temporal but of the spiritual, not of the carnal mind
but of God.
5 Now, behold, I say unto you, if I had not been born of God I should not
have known these things;
But God has, by the mouth of his holy angel, made these things
known unto me,
Not of any worthiness of myself, for I went about with the sons of Mosiah,
Seeking to destroy the church of God; but behold,
God sent his holy angel to stop us by the way.
7 And behold, he spake unto us,
As it were the voice of thunder,
And the whole earth did tremble beneath our feet;
And we fell to the earth, for the fear of the Lord came upon us.
8 But behold, the voice said unto me: Arise. And I arose and stood up, and
beheld the angel.
9 And he said unto me: If thou wilt of thyself be destroyed, seek no more to
destroy the church of God.
10 And it came to pass that I fell to the earth; and it was for the space of
three days and three nights,
That I could not open my mouth, neither had I the
use of my limbs.
11 And the angel spake more things unto me, which were heard by my brethren,
But I did not hear them; for when I heard the words──
If thou wilt be destroyed of thyself,
Seek no more to destroy the church of God──
I was struck with such great fear and amazement,
Lest perhaps I should be destroyed, that I fell to the earth,
And I did hear no more, but I was racked with eternal torment,
For my soul was harrowed up to the
greatest degree and racked with all my sins.
13 Yea, I did remember all my sins and iniquities, for which I was tormented
with the pains of hell;
Yea, I saw that I had rebelled against my God, and that
I had not kept his holy commandments.
14 Yea, and I had murdered many of his children, or rather led them away unto
destruction;
Yea, and in fine so great had been my iniquities, that the very
thought,
Of coming into the presence of my God did rack my soul with
inexpressible horror.
15 Oh, thought I, that I could be banished and become extinct both soul and
body,
That I might not be brought to stand in the presence of my God, to be
judged of my deeds.
16 And now, for three days and for three nights was I racked,
Even with the
pains of a damned soul.
17 And it came to pass,
That as I was thus racked with torment,
While I was harrowed up by the memory of my many sins,
Behold, I remembered also to have heard my father prophesy unto the
people,
Concerning the coming of one Jesus Christ, a Son of God, to atone
for the sins of the world.
18 Now, as my mind caught hold upon this thought, I cried within my heart:
O
Jesus, thou Son of God, have mercy on me, who am in the gall of bitterness,
And
am encircled about by the everlasting chains of death.
19 And now, behold, when I thought this,
I could remember my pains no more;
Yea,
I was harrowed up by the memory of my sins no more.
20 And oh, what joy, and what marvelous light I did behold;
Yea, my soul was
filled with joy as exceeding as was my pain!
21 Yea, I say unto you, my son,
That there could be nothing so exquisite and so
bitter as were my pains.
Yea, and again I say unto you, my son, that on the
other hand,
There can be nothing so exquisite and sweet as was my joy.
22 Yea, methought I saw, even as our father Lehi saw,
God sitting upon his
throne, surrounded with numberless concourses of angels,
In the attitude of
singing and praising their God; yea, and my soul did long to be there.
23 But behold, my limbs did receive their strength again, and I stood upon my
feet,
And did manifest unto the people that I had been born of God.
24 Yea, and from that time even until now,
I have labored without ceasing,
That
I might bring souls unto repentance;
That I might bring them to taste of the
exceeding joy,
Of which I did taste; that they might also be born of God, and be
filled with the Holy Ghost.
25 Yea, and now behold, O my son, the Lord doth give me exceedingly great joy in
the fruit of my labors;
26 For because of the word which he has imparted unto me, behold, many have been
born of God,
And have tasted as I have tasted, and have seen eye to eye as I
have seen;
Therefore they do know of these things of which I have spoken,
As I
do know; and the knowledge which I have is of God.
27 And I have been supported under trials and troubles of every kind,
Yea, and
in all manner of afflictions; yea, God has delivered me from prison,
And from
bonds, and from death; yea, and I do put my trust in him, and he will still
deliver me.
28 And I know that he will raise me up at the last day, to dwell with him in
glory;
Yea, and I will praise him forever, for he has brought our fathers out of
Egypt,
And he has swallowed up the Egyptians in the Red Sea;
And he led them by
his power into the promised land;
Yea, and he has delivered them out of bondage
and captivity from time to time.
29 Yea, and he has also brought our fathers out of the land of Jerusalem; and he
has also,
By his everlasting power, delivered them out of bondage and captivity, from time to time,
Even down to the present day; and I have always retained in
remembrance their captivity;
Yea, and ye also ought to retain in remembrance, as
I have done, their captivity.
30 But behold, my son, this is not all; for ye ought to know as I do know,
That
inasmuch as ye shall keep the commandments of God,
Ye shall prosper in the land; and ye ought to know also,
That inasmuch as ye will not keep the commandments of
God,
Ye shall be cut off from his presence.
Now this is according to his word.
![]()
ALMA 37
1 AND now, my son Helaman, I command you, that ye take the records which have
been entrusted with me;
2 And I also command you that ye keep a record of this people, according as I
have done,
Upon the plates of Nephi, and keep all these things sacred which I
have kept,
Even as I have kept them; for it is for a wise purpose that they are
kept.
3 And these plates of brass, which contain these engravings,
Which have the
records of the holy scriptures upon them,
Which have the genealogy of our
forefathers,
Even from the beginning──
4 Behold, it has been prophesied by our fathers,
That they should be kept and
handed down from one generation to another,
And be kept and preserved by the
hand of the Lord until they should go forth,
Unto every nation, kindred, tongue,
and people,
That they shall know of the mysteries contained thereon.
5 And now behold, if they are kept they must retain their brightness;
Yea, and
they will retain their brightness;
Yea, and also shall all the plates which do
contain that which is holy writ.
6 Now ye may suppose that this is foolishness in me; but behold I say unto
you,
That by small and simple things are great things brought to pass;
And small means in many instances doth confound the wise.
7 And the Lord God doth work by means,
To bring about his great and eternal
purposes;
And by very small means the Lord doth confound the wise,
And bringeth
about the salvation of many souls.
8 And now, it has hitherto been wisdom in God,
That these things should be
preserved;
For behold,
They have enlarged the memory of this people,
Yea, and convinced many of the error of their ways,
And brought them to the knowledge of
their God unto the salvation of their souls.
9 Yea, I say unto you, were it not for these things that these records
do contain, which are on these plates,
Ammon and his brethren could not have
convinced so many thousands of the Lamanites,
Of the incorrect tradition of their
fathers;
Yea, these records and their words brought them unto repentance;
That
is, they brought them to the knowledge of the Lord their God, and to rejoice in
Jesus Christ their Redeemer.
10 And who knoweth but what they will be the means of bringing many thousands of
them,
Yea, and also many thousands of our stiffnecked brethren, the Nephites,
Who are now hardening their hearts in sin and iniquities,
To the knowledge of
their Redeemer?
11 Now these mysteries are not yet fully made known unto me;
Therefore I shall
forbear. And it may suffice if I only say they are preserved for a wise purpose,
Which
purpose is known unto God; for he doth counsel in wisdom over all his works,
And
his paths are straight, and his course is one eternal round.
13 O remember, remember, my son Helaman,
How strict are the commandments of God. And he said:
If ye will keep my commandments ye shall prosper in the land──
But
if ye keep not his commandments ye shall be cut off from his presence.
14 And now remember, my son, that God has entrusted you with these things, which
are sacred,
Which he has kept sacred, and also which he will keep and preserve
for a wise purpose in him,
That he may show forth his power unto future
generations. And now behold,
I tell you by the spirit of prophecy, that if ye transgress
the commandments of God,
Behold, these things which are sacred shall be taken
away from you by the power of God,
And ye shall be delivered up unto Satan, that
he may sift you as chaff before the wind.
16 But if ye keep the commandments of God, and do with these things which are
sacred,
According to that which the Lord doth command you,
(for you must appeal
unto the Lord,
For all things whatsoever ye must do with them)
Behold, no power
of earth or hell can take them from you,
For God is powerful to the fulfilling
of all his words.
17 For he will fulfill all his promises which he shall make unto you,
For he has
fulfilled his promises which he has made unto our fathers.
18 For he promised unto them that he would preserve these things for a wise
purpose in him,
That he might show forth his power unto future generations.
19 And now behold, one purpose hath he fulfilled,
Even to the restoration of
many thousands of the Lamanites,
To the knowledge of the truth; and he hath shown
forth his power in them,
And he will also still show forth his power in them
unto future generations;
Therefore they shall be preserved.
20 Therefore I command you, my son Helaman,
That ye be diligent in fulfilling
all my words,
And that ye be diligent in keeping the commandments of God as they
are written.
21 And now, I will speak unto you concerning those twenty-four plates,
That ye
keep them, that the mysteries and the works of darkness,
And their secret works, or the secret works of those people,
Who have been destroyed, may be made
manifest unto this people;
Yea, all their murders, and robbings, and their plunderings,
And all their wickedness, and abominations,
May be made manifest
unto this people;
Yea, and that ye preserve these interpreters;
22 For behold, the Lord saw that his people began to work in darkness,
Yea, work
secret murders and abominations; therefore the Lord said, if they did not repent,
They should be destroyed from off the face of the earth;
23 And the Lord said: I will prepare, unto my servant Gazelem,
A stone, which
shall shine forth in darkness unto light,
That I may discover unto my people who serve me,
That I may discover unto them the works of their brethren,
Yea, their
secret works, their works of darkness,
And their wickedness and abominations.
24 And now, my son, these interpreters were prepared,
That the word of God might
be fulfilled, which he spake, saying:
25 I will bring forth out of darkness unto light all their secret works and
their abominations;
And except they repent I will destroy them from off the face
of the earth;
And I will bring to light all their secrets and abominations,
Unto
every nation that shall hereafter possess the land.
26 And now, my son, we see that they did not repent;
Therefore they have been
destroyed,
And thus far the word of God has been fulfilled;
Yea, their secret
abominations have been brought out of darkness and made known unto us.
27 And now, my son, I command you that ye retain all their oaths, and their
covenants, and their agreements,
In their secret abominations; yea, and all their
signs,
And their wonders ye shall keep from this people,
That they know them not,
lest peradventure
They should fall into darkness also and be destroyed.
28 For behold, there is a curse upon all this land,
That destruction shall come,
Upon all those workers of darkness,
According to the power of God, when they are
fully ripe;
Therefore I desire that this people might not be destroyed.
29 Therefore ye shall keep these secret plans of their oaths and their covenants
from this people,
And only their wickedness and their murders and their
abominations shall ye make known unto them;
And ye shall teach them to abhor
such wickedness and abominations and murders;
And ye shall also teach them that
these people were destroyed,
On account of their wickedness and abominations, and
their murders.
30 For behold, they murdered all the prophets of the Lord,
Who came among them to
declare unto them concerning their iniquities;
And the blood of those whom they
murdered did cry unto the Lord their God for vengeance,
Upon those who were their
murderers; and thus the judgments of God,
Did come upon these workers of darkness
and secret combinations.
31 Yea, and cursed be the land forever and ever,
Unto those workers of darkness
and secret combinations,
Even unto destruction, except they repent before they
are fully ripe.
32 And now, my son, remember the words which I have spoken unto you;
Trust not
those secret plans unto this people,
But teach them an everlasting hatred
against sin and iniquity.
33 Preach unto them repentance, and faith on the Lord Jesus Christ;
Teach them
to humble themselves and to be meek and lowly in heart;
Teach them to withstand
every temptation of the devil,
With their faith on the Lord Jesus Christ.
34 Teach them to never be weary of good works,
But to be meek and lowly in
heart;
For such shall find rest to their souls.
35 O, remember, my son, and learn wisdom in thy youth;
Yea, learn in thy youth
to keep the commandments of God.
36 Yea, and cry unto God for all thy support;
Yea, let all thy doings be unto
the Lord,
And whithersoever thou goest let it be in the Lord;
Yea, let all thy
thoughts be directed unto the Lord;
Yea, let the affections of thy heart be
placed upon the Lord forever.
37 Counsel with the Lord in all thy doings, and he will direct thee for good;
Yea, when thou liest down at night lie down unto the Lord, that he may watch
over you in your sleep;
And when thou risest in the morning let thy heart be
full of thanks unto God;
And if ye do these things, ye shall be lifted up at the
last day.
38 And now, my son, I have somewhat to say concerning the thing,
Which our
fathers call a ball, or director──
Or our fathers called it Liahona,
Which is,
being interpreted, a compass; and the Lord prepared it.
39 And behold, there cannot any man work after the manner of so curious a
workmanship.
And behold, it was prepared to show unto our fathers the course
which they should travel in the wilderness.
40 And it did work for them according to their faith in God;
Therefore, if they
had faith to believe that God could cause that those spindles,
Should point the
way they should go, behold, it was done; therefore they had this miracle,
And
also many other miracles wrought by the power of God, day by day.
41 Nevertheless, because those miracles were worked by small means,
It did show
unto them marvelous works.
They were slothful and forgot to exercise their
faith and diligence,
And then those marvelous works ceased, and they did not
progress in their journey;
42 Therefore, they tarried in the wilderness, or did not travel a direct course,
And were afflicted with hunger and thirst because of their transgressions.
43 And now, my son, I would that ye should understand that these things,
Are not
without a shadow; for as our fathers were slothful,
To give heed to this compass (now these things were temporal)
They did not prosper; even so, it is with things
which are spiritual.
44 For behold, it is as easy to give heed to the word of Christ,
Which will
point to you a straight course to eternal bliss,
As it was for our fathers to
give heed to this compass,
Which would point unto them,
A straight course to the
promised land.
45 And now I say, is there not a type in this thing?
For just as surely as this
director did bring our fathers,
By following its course, to the promised land,
shall the words of Christ,
If we follow their course, carry us beyond this vale
of sorrow into a far better land of promise.
46 O my son, do not let us be slothful because of the easiness of the way;
For
so was it with our fathers;
For so was it prepared for them, that if they would
look they might live;
Even so it is with us; the way is prepared, and if we will
look we may live forever.
47 And now, my son, see that ye take care of these sacred things, yea, see that
ye look to God and live.
Go unto this people and declare the word, and be sober.
My son, farewell.
![]()
ALMA 38
1 MY son, give ear to my words, for I say unto you, even as I said unto Helaman,
That inasmuch as ye shall keep the commandments of God ye shall prosper in the
land;
And inasmuch as ye will not keep the commandments of God ye shall be cut
off from his presence.
2 And now, my son, I trust that I shall have great joy in you,
Because of your
steadiness and your faithfulness unto God;
For as you have commenced in your
youth to look to the Lord your God,
Even so I hope that you will continue
in keeping his commandments;
For blessed is he that endureth to the end.
3 I say unto you, my son,
That I have had great joy in thee already,
Because of
thy faithfulness and thy diligence,
And thy patience and thy long-suffering
among the people of the Zoramites.
4 For I know that thou wast in bonds; yea, and I also know that thou wast stoned
for the word's sake;
And thou didst bear all these things with patience because
the Lord was with thee;
And now thou knowest that the Lord did deliver thee.
5 And now my son, Shiblon,
I would that ye should remember,
That as much as ye
shall put your trust in God,
Even so much ye shall be delivered out of your
trials,
And your troubles, and your afflictions, and ye shall be lifted up at
the last day.
6 And now, my son, I would not that ye should think that I know these things of
myself,
But it is the Spirit of God which is in me which maketh these things
known unto me;
For if I had not been born of God I should not have known these
things.
7 But behold, the Lord in his great mercy sent his angel to declare
unto me,
That
I must stop the work of destruction among his people;
Yea, and I have seen an
angel face to face, and he spake with me,
And his voice was as thunder, and
it shook the whole earth.
8 It came to pass that I was three days and three nights,
In the most bitter
pain and anguish of soul;
And never, until I did cry out unto the Lord Jesus
Christ,
For mercy did I receive a remission of my sins.
But behold, I did cry
unto him and I did find peace to my soul.
9 And now, my son, I have told you this that ye may learn wisdom, that ye may
learn of me,
That there is no other way or means whereby man can be saved, only
in and through Christ.
Behold, he is the life and the light of the world. Behold, he is the word of truth and righteousness.
10 And now, as ye have begun to teach the word even so I would that ye should
continue to teach;
And I would that ye would be diligent and temperate in all
things.
11 See that ye are not lifted up unto pride;
Yea, see that ye do not boast in
your own wisdom,
Nor of your much strength. Use boldness, but not overbearance;
And also see that ye bridle all your
passions, that ye may be filled with love;
See that ye refrain from idleness. And do not pray as the Zoramites do,
For ye have seen that they pray to be heard
of men, and to be praised for their wisdom.
14 Do not say: O God, I thank thee that we are better than our brethren;
But
rather say: O Lord, forgive my unworthiness,
And remember my brethren in
mercy──
Yea, acknowledge your unworthiness before God at all times.
15 And may the Lord bless your soul, and receive you at the last day into his
kingdom, to sit down in peace.
Now go, my son, and teach the word unto this
people. Be sober. My son, farewell.
![]()
ALMA 39
1 AND now, my son, I have somewhat more to say unto thee than what I said unto
thy brother;
For behold, have ye not observed the steadiness of thy brother, his
faithfulness,
And his diligence in keeping the commandments of God? Behold, has
he not set a good example for thee?
2 For thou didst not give so much heed unto my words as did thy brother, among
the people of the Zoramites.
Now this is what I have against thee; thou didst go
on unto boasting in thy strength and thy wisdom.
3 And this is not all, my son. Thou didst do that which was grievous unto me;
For thou didst forsake the ministry, and did go over into the land of Siron,
Among the borders of the Lamanites, after the harlot Isabel.
4 Yea, she did steal away the hearts of many;
But this was no excuse for thee,
my son.
Thou shouldst have tended to the ministry wherewith thou wast entrusted.
5 Know ye not, my son, that these things are an abomination in the sight of the
Lord;
Yea, most abominable above all sins save it be the shedding of innocent
blood or denying the Holy Ghost?
6 For behold, if ye deny the Holy Ghost when it once has had place in you,
And
ye know that ye deny it, behold, this is a sin which is unpardonable;
Yea, and
whosoever murdereth against the light and knowledge of God,
It is not easy for him to obtain forgiveness;
Yea, I say unto you, my son,
That it is not easy for him to obtain a forgiveness.
7 And now, my son, I would to God that ye had not been guilty of so great
a crime;
I would not dwell upon your crimes, to harrow up your
soul, if it were not for your good.
8 But behold, ye cannot hide your crimes from God; and except ye repent,
They will stand as a testimony against you at the last day.
9 Now my son, I would that ye should repent,
And forsake your sins, and go no
more,
After the lusts of your eyes,
But cross yourself in all these things;
For
except ye do this ye can in nowise inherit the kingdom of God.
Oh, remember, and
take it upon you, and cross yourself in these things.
10 And I command you to take it upon you to counsel with your elder brothers in
your undertakings;
For behold, thou art in thy youth, and ye stand in need to be
nourished by your bothers.
And give heed to their counsel. And suffer not yourself to be led away by any vain or foolish thing;
Suffer not
the devil to lead away your heart again after those wicked harlots.
Behold, O my
son, how great iniquity ye brought upon the Zoramites;
For when they saw your
conduct they would not believe in my words.
12 And now the Spirit of the Lord doth say unto me:
Command thy children to do
good,
Lest they lead away the hearts of many people to destruction;
Therefore I
command you, my son, in the fear of God, that ye refrain from your iniquities;
13 That ye turn to the Lord with all your mind, might, and strength;
That ye
lead away the hearts of no more to do wickedly;
But rather return unto them, and
acknowledge,
Your faults and that wrong which ye have done.
14 Seek not after riches nor the vain things of this world;
For behold, you
cannot carry them with you.
15 And now, my son, I would say somewhat unto you,
Concerning the coming of
Christ. Behold, I say unto you,
That it is he that surely shall come to take
away the sins of the world;
Yea, he cometh to declare glad tidings of salvation
unto his people.
16 And now, my son, this was the ministry unto which ye were called,
To declare
these glad tidings unto this people,
To prepare their minds; or rather that
salvation might come unto them,
That they may prepare the minds of their
children to hear the word at the time of his coming.
17 And now I will ease your mind somewhat on this subject;
Behold, you marvel
why these things should be known so long beforehand.
Behold, I say unto you, is
not a soul at this time as precious unto God,
As a soul will be at the time of
his coming?
18 Is it not as necessary that the plan of redemption,
Should be made known unto
this people as well as unto their children?
19 Is it not as easy at this time for the Lord to send his angel to declare
these glad tidings unto us,
As unto our children, or as after the time of his
coming?
![]()
ALMA 40
1 NOW my son, here is somewhat more I would say unto thee;
For I perceive that
thy mind is worried concerning the resurrection of the dead.
2 Behold, I say unto you, that there is no resurrection──or, I would say,
In
other words, that this mortal does not put on immortality,
This corruption does
not put on incorruption──
Until after the coming of Christ.
3 Behold, he bringeth to pass the resurrection of the dead.
But behold, my son, the resurrection is not yet. Now, I unfold unto
you a mystery;
Nevertheless, there are many mysteries which are kept, that no one
knoweth them save God himself.
But I show unto you one thing which I have inquired diligently of
God,
That I might know──that is concerning the resurrection.
4 Behold, there is a time appointed that all shall come forth from the dead.
Now
when this time cometh no one knows; but God knoweth the time which is appointed.
5 Now, whether there shall be one time, or a second time, or a third time,
That
men shall come forth from the dead, it mattereth not;
For God knoweth all these
things;
And it sufficeth me to know that this is the case──
That there is a time
appointed that all shall rise from the dead.
6 Now there must needs be a space betwixt the time of death and the time of the
resurrection.
7 And now I would inquire what becometh of the souls of men from this time
of death,
To the time appointed for the resurrection?
8 Now whether there is more than one time,
Appointed for men to rise it mattereth
not;
For all do not die at once, and this mattereth not;
All is as one day with
God, and time only is measured unto men.
9 Therefore, there is a time appointed unto men that they shall rise from the
dead;
And there is a space between the time of death and the resurrection.
And
now, concerning this space of time, what becometh of the souls of men,
Is the
thing which I have inquired diligently of the Lord to know;
And this is the
thing of what I do know:
10 And when the time cometh when all shall rise,
Then shall they know that God
knoweth all the times which are appointed unto man.
11 Now, concerning the state of the soul between death and the
resurrection──
Behold, it has been made known unto me by an angel,
That the
spirits of all men,
As soon as they are departed from this mortal body,
Yea, the
spirits of all men, whether they be good or evil,
Are taken home to that God who
gave them life.
12 And then shall it come to pass,
That the spirits of those who are righteous,
Are received into a state of happiness, which is called paradise,
A state of
rest, a state of peace, where they shall rest from all their troubles and from
all care, and sorrow.
13 And then shall it come to pass, that the spirits of the wicked, yea, who are
evil──
For behold, they have no part nor portion of the Spirit of the Lord;
For
behold, they chose evil works rather than good;
Therefore the spirit of the
devil,
Did enter into them,
And take possession of their house──
And these shall
be cast out into outer darkness;
There shall be weeping, and wailing, and
gnashing of teeth,
And this because of their own iniquity, being led captive by
the will of the devil.
14 Now this is the state of the souls of the wicked, yea, in darkness, and a
state of awful,
Fearful looking for the fiery indignation of the wrath of God upon them;
Thus they remain in this state, as well as the righteous in
paradise, until the time of their resurrection.
15 Now, there are some that have understood that this state of happiness and
this state of misery of the soul,
Before the resurrection, was a first
resurrection. Yea, I admit it may be termed a resurrection,
The raising of the
spirit or the soul and their consignation to happiness or misery,
According to
the words which have been spoken.
16 And behold, again it hath been spoken,
That there is a first resurrection,
A
resurrection of all those who have been, or who are,
Or who shall be, down to
the resurrection of Christ from the dead.
17 Now, we do not suppose that this first resurrection, which is spoken of in
this manner,
Can be the resurrection of the souls and their consignation to
happiness or misery.
Ye cannot suppose that this is what it meaneth.
18 Behold, I say unto you, Nay;
But it meaneth the reuniting of the soul with
the body,
Of those from the days of Adam down to the resurrection of Christ.
19 Now, whether the souls and the bodies of those of whom has been spoken shall
all be reunited at once,
The wicked as well as the righteous, I do not say; let
it suffice,
That I say that they all come forth;
Or in other words, their
resurrection cometh to pass,
Before the resurrection of those who die after the
resurrection of Christ.
20 Now, my son, I do not say that their resurrection cometh at the resurrection
of Christ;
But behold, I give it as my opinion, that the souls and the bodies
are reunited, of the righteous,
At the resurrection of Christ, and his ascension
into heaven.
21 But whether it be at his resurrection or after, I do not say;
But this much I
say, that there is a space between death,
And the resurrection of the body,
And a
state of the soul in happiness or in misery,
Until the time which is appointed of
God that the dead shall come forth,
And be reunited, both soul and body, and be
brought to stand before God,
And be judged according to their works. Yea, this bringeth about the restoration,
Of those things of which has been
spoken by the mouths of the prophets.
23 The soul shall be restored to the body, and the body to the soul;
Yea, and
every limb and joint shall be restored to its body;
Yea, even a hair of the head
shall not be lost;
But all things shall be restored to their proper and perfect
frame.
24 And now, my son, this is the restoration of which has been spoken by the
mouth of the prophets──
25 And then shall the righteous shine forth in the kingdom of God.
26 But behold, an awful death cometh upon the wicked;
For they die as to things
pertaining to things of righteousness;
For they are unclean, and no unclean
thing can inherit the kingdom of God;
But they are cast out, and consigned to partake of the fruits of their labors or their works,
Which have been evil; and
they drink the dregs of a bitter cup.
![]()
ALMA 41
1 AND now, my son, I have somewhat to say concerning the restoration of which
has been spoken;
For behold, some have wrested the scriptures, and have gone far
astray because of this thing.
And I perceive that thy mind has been worried also
concerning this thing.
But behold, I will explain it unto thee.
2 I say unto thee, my son,
That the plan of restoration is requisite with the justice of God;
For it is requisite that all things should be restored to their
proper order.
Behold, it is requisite and just, according to the power and
resurrection of Christ,
That the soul of man should be restored to its body, and that every
part of the body should be restored to itself.
3 And it is requisite with the justice of God that men should be judged
according to their works;
And if their works were good in this life, and the
desires of their hearts were good,
That they should also, at the last day, be
restored unto that which is good.
4 And if their works are evil they shall be restored unto them for evil.
Therefore, all things shall be restored to their proper order,
Every thing to
its natural frame──
Mortality raised to immortality, corruption to
incorruption──
Raised to endless happiness to inherit the kingdom of God,
Or to
endless misery to inherit the kingdom of the devil,
The one on one hand, the
other on the other──
5 The one raised to happiness,
According to his desires of happiness,
Or good
according to his desires of good;
And the other to evil according to his desires of evil;
For as he has desired to do evil all the day long,
Even so shall he have
his reward of evil when the night cometh.
6 And so it is on the other hand. If he hath repented of his sins,
And desired
righteousness until the end of his days,
Even so he shall be rewarded unto
righteousness.
7 These are they that are redeemed of the Lord;
Yea, these are they that are
taken out,
That are delivered from that endless night of darkness;
And thus they
stand or fall; for behold, they are their own judges,
Whether to do good or do
evil. Now, the decrees of God are unalterable;
Therefore, the way is prepared that
whosoever will may walk therein and be saved.
9 And now behold, my son, do not risk one more offense against your God,
Upon
those points of doctrine, which ye have hitherto risked to commit sin.
10 Do not suppose, because it has been spoken concerning restoration,
That ye
shall be restored from sin to happiness.
Behold, I say unto you, Wickedness
never was happiness.
11 And now, my son, all men that are in a state of nature, or I would say,
In a
carnal state, are in the gall of bitterness and in the bonds of iniquity;
They
are without God in the world, and they have gone contrary to the nature of God;
Therefore, they are in a state contrary to the nature of happiness.
12 And now behold, is the meaning of the word restoration to take a thing of a
natural state,
And place it in an unnatural state, or to place it in a state
opposite to its nature? O, my son,
This is not the case; but the meaning of the word restoration is
to bring back again evil for evil,
Or carnal for carnal, or devilish for
devilish──good for that which is good;
Righteous for that which is righteous; just for that which is just;
Merciful for that which is merciful. Therefore, my son,
See that you are merciful unto your brethren;
Deal justly,
judge righteously, and do good continually;
And if ye do all these things then
shall ye receive your reward;
Yea, ye shall have mercy restored unto you again;
Ye shall have justice restored unto you again;
Ye shall have a righteous
judgment,
Restored unto you again;
And ye shall have good rewarded unto you
again.
15 For that which ye do send out shall return unto you again, and be restored;
Therefore, the word restoration more fully condemneth the sinner, and justifieth
him not at all.
![]()
ALMA 42
1 AND now, my son, I perceive there is somewhat more which doth worry your mind,
which ye cannot understand──
Which is concerning the justice of God in the
punishment of the sinner;
For ye do try to suppose that it is injustice,
That the
sinner should be consigned to a state of misery.
2 Now behold, my son, I will explain this thing unto thee.
For behold, after the Lord God sent our first parents forth from
the garden of Eden,
To till the ground, from whence they were taken──yea, he drew out
the man,
And he placed at the east end of the garden of Eden, cherubim,
And a flaming sword which turned every way, to keep the tree of
life──
3 Now, we see that the man had become as God, knowing good and evil; and
lest,
He should put forth his hand, and take also of the tree of life, and
eat and live forever,
The Lord God placed cherubim and the flaming sword, that he should
not partake of the fruit──
4 And thus we see, that there was a time granted unto man to repent, yea,
a probationary time,
A time to repent and serve God. For behold, if Adam had put forth
his hand immediately,
And partaken of the tree of life, he would have lived forever,
According to the word of God,
Having no space for repentance;
Yea, and also the word of God would have been void,
And the great plan of salvation would have been
frustrated.
6 But behold, it was appointed unto man to die──therefore, as they were
cut off from the tree of life,
They should be cut off from the face of the earth──and man became
lost forever,
Yea, they became fallen man.
7 And now, ye see by this that our first parents,
Were cut off both temporally and spiritually from the presence of
the Lord;
And thus we see they became subjects to follow after their own
will.
8 Now behold, it was not expedient that man should be reclaimed,
From this temporal death, for that would destroy the great plan of
happiness.
9 Therefore, as the soul could never die, and the fall had brought upon all
mankind,
A spiritual death as well as a temporal, that is, they were cut off from
the presence of the Lord,
It was expedient that mankind should be reclaimed from
this spiritual death.
10 Therefore, as they had become carnal, sensual, and devilish, by nature,
This
probationary state became a state for them to prepare;
It became a preparatory
state.
11 And now remember, my son,
If it were not for the plan of redemption,
(laying
it aside) as soon as they were dead their souls,
were miserable, being cut off
from the presence of the Lord.
12 And now, there was no means to reclaim men from this fallen state,
Which man
had brought upon himself because of his own disobedience;
13 Therefore, according to justice,
The plan of redemption could not be brought
about,
Only on conditions of repentance of men in this probationary state,
Yea, this preparatory state; for except it were for these conditions,
Mercy could not
take effect except it should destroy the work of justice.
Now the work of
justice could not be destroyed; if so, God would cease to be God.
14 And thus we see that all mankind were fallen, and they were in the grasp of
justice;
Yea, the justice of God, which consigned them forever to be cut off
from his presence.
15 And now, the plan of mercy could not be brought about except an atonement
should be made;
Therefore God himself atoneth for the sins of the world, to
bring about the plan of mercy,
To appease the demands of justice, that God might
be a perfect, just God, and a merciful God also.
16 Now, repentance could not come unto men except there were a punishment,
Which
also was eternal as the life of the soul should be,
Affixed opposite to the plan
of happiness,
Which was as eternal also as the life of the soul.
17 Now, how could a man repent except he should sin?
How could he sin if there was no law?
How could there be a law save there was a punishment?
18 Now, there was a punishment affixed, and a just law given,
Which brought
remorse of conscience unto man. Now, if there was no law given──
If a man murdered he should die──would he be
afraid he would die if he should murder?
20 And also, if there was no law given against sin men would not be afraid to
sin.
21 And if there was no law given and if men sinned what could justice do,
Or mercy
either, for they would have no claim upon the creature?
22 But there is a law given, and a punishment affixed, and a repentance granted;
Which repentance, mercy claimeth; otherwise, justice claimeth the creature,
And
executeth the law, and the law inflicteth the punishment; if not so,
The works
of justice would be destroyed, and God would cease to be God.
23 But God ceaseth not to be God, and mercy claimeth the penitent,
And mercy
cometh because of the atonement;
And the atonement bringeth to pass the
resurrection of the dead;
And the resurrection of the dead bringeth back men
into the presence of God;
And thus they are restored into his presence, to be
judged according to their works,
According to the law and justice. For behold, justice exerciseth
all his demands,
And also mercy claimeth all which is her own; and thus,
None but the truly penitent are saved.
25 What, do ye suppose that mercy can rob justice?
I say unto you, Nay; not one
whit. If so, God would cease to be God.
26 And thus God bringeth about his great and eternal purposes,
Which were
prepared from the foundation of the world.
And thus cometh about the salvation,
And the redemption of men, and also their destruction and misery.
27 Therefore, O my son, whosoever will come may come and partake of the waters
of life freely;
And whosoever will not come the same is not compelled to come;
But in the last day it shall be restored,
Unto him according to his deeds.
28 If he has desired to do evil, and has not repented in his days,
Behold, evil
shall be done unto him, according to the restoration of God.
29 And now, my son, I desire that ye should let these things trouble you no
more,
And only let your sins trouble you,
With that trouble which shall bring
you down unto repentance.
30 O my son, I desire that ye should deny the justice of God no more.
Do not
endeavor to excuse yourself in the least point because of your sins,
By denying
the justice of God; but do you let the justice of God, and his mercy,
And his
long-suffering have full sway in your heart; and let it bring you down to the
dust in humility.
31 And now, O my son, ye are called of God to preach the word unto this people.
And now, my son, go thy way, declare the word with truth and soberness,
That
thou mayest bring souls unto repentance,
That the great plan of mercy may have
claim upon them.
And may God grant unto you even according to my words. Amen.
![]()
ALMA 43
1 AND now it came to pass,
That the sons of Alma did go forth among the people, to declare the word unto them.
And Alma, also, himself, could not rest, and he
also went forth.
2 Now we shall say no more concerning their preaching,
Except that they preached
the word, and the truth,
According to the spirit of prophecy and revelation;
And
they preached after the holy order of God by which they were called.
3 And now I return to an account of the wars between the Nephites and the
Lamanites,
In the eighteenth year of the reign of the judges.
4 For behold, it came to pass that the Zoramites became Lamanites;
Therefore, in
the commencement of the eighteenth year the people of the Nephites,
Saw that the
Lamanites were coming upon them; therefore they made preparations for war;
Yea, they gathered together their armies in the land of Jershon.
5 And it came to pass that the Lamanites came with their thousands;
And they
came into the land of Antionum,
Which is the land of the Zoramites;
And a man by
the name of Zerahemnah was their leader.
6 And now, as the Amlicites were of a more wicked and murderous disposition,
Than the Lamanites were, in and of themselves, therefore,
Zerahemnah appointed chief captains,
Over the Lamanites, and they were all Amlicites and Zoramites.
7 Now this he did that he might preserve their hatred towards the Nephites,
That
he might bring them into subjection to the accomplishment of his designs.
8 For behold, his designs were to stir up the Lamanites to anger against the
Nephites;
This he did that he might usurp great power over them.
And also that
he might gain power,
Over the Nephites by bringing them into bondage.
9 And now the design of the Nephites was to support their lands,
And their
houses, and their wives, and their children,
That they might preserve them from
the hands of their enemies;
And also that they might preserve their rights and
their privileges,
Yea, and also their liberty, that they might worship God
according to their desires.
10 For they knew that if they should fall into the hands of the Lamanites,
That
whosoever should worship God in spirit and in truth,
The true and the living
God, the Lamanites would destroy.
11 Yea, and they also knew the extreme hatred of the Lamanites towards their
brethren,
Who were the people of Anti-Nephi-Lehi, who were called the people of
Ammon──
And they would not take up arms, yea, they had entered into a covenant
and they would not break it──
Therefore, if they should fall into the hands of
the Lamanites they would be destroyed.
12 And the Nephites would not suffer that they should be destroyed;
Therefore
they gave them lands for their inheritance.
13 And the people of Ammon did give unto the Nephites,
A large portion of their
substance to support their armies;
And thus the Nephites were compelled, alone,
to withstand against the Lamanites,
Who were a compound of Laman and Lemuel, and
the sons of Ishmael,
And all those who had dissented from the Nephites,
Who were Amlicites and Zoramites,
And the descendants of the priests of Noah.
14 Now those descendants were as numerous, nearly, as were the Nephites;
And
thus the Nephites were obliged to contend with their brethren, even unto
bloodshed.
15 And it came to pass as the armies of the Lamanites had gathered together in
the land of Antionum,
Behold, the armies of the Nephites were prepared to meet
them in the land of Jershon.
16 Now, the leader of the Nephites, or the man who had been appointed to be the
chief captain over the Nephites──
Now the chief captain took the command of all
the armies of the Nephites──
And his name was Moroni; and Moroni took all the command, and the government of their wars.
And he was
only twenty and five years old when he was appointed chief captain over the
armies of the Nephites.
18 And it came to pass that he met the Lamanites in the borders of Jershon,
And
his people were armed with swords,
And with cimeters, and all manner of weapons
of war.
19 And when the armies of the Lamanites saw that the people of Nephi,
Or that
Moroni, had prepared his people with breastplates and with arm-shields,
Yea, and
also shields to defend their heads, and also they were dressed with thick
clothing──
20 Now the army of Zerahemnah was not prepared with any such thing;
They had
only their swords and their cimeters,
Their bows and their arrows, their stones
and their slings;
And they were naked, save it were a skin which was girded
about their loins;
Yea, all were naked, save it were the Zoramites and the Amlicites;
21 But they were not armed with breastplates, nor shields──
Therefore, they were
exceedingly afraid of the armies of the Nephites,
Because of their armor, notwithstanding their number being so much greater than the Nephites.
22 Behold, now it came to pass that they durst not come against the Nephites in
the borders of Jershon;
Therefore they departed out of the land of Antionum into
the wilderness,
And took their journey round about in the wilderness,
Away by
the head of the river Sidon,
That they might come into the land of Manti and
take possession of the land;
For they did not suppose that the armies of Moroni
would know whither they had gone.
23 But it came to pass, as soon as they had departed into the wilderness,
Moroni
sent spies into the wilderness to watch their camp;
And Moroni, also, knowing of
the prophecies of Alma,
Sent certain men unto him, desiring him that he should
inquire of the Lord,
Whither the armies of the Nephites should go to defend
themselves against the Lamanites.
24 And it came to pass that the word of the Lord came unto Alma, and Alma
informed the messengers of Moroni,
That the armies of the Lamanites were
marching round about in the wilderness,
That they might come over into the land
of Manti,
That they might commence an attack upon the weaker part of the people.
And those messengers went and delivered the message unto Moroni.
25 Now Moroni, leaving a part of his army in the land of Jershon, lest by any
means,
A part of the Lamanites should come into that land and take possession of
the city,
Took the remaining part of his army and marched over into the land of
Manti.
26 And he caused that all the people in that quarter of the land,
Should gather
themselves together to battle against the Lamanites,
To defend their lands and
their country, their rights and their liberties;
Therefore they were prepared
against the time of the coming of the Lamanites.
27 And it came to pass that Moroni caused that his army should be secreted in
the valley,
Which was near the bank of the river Sidon, which was on the west of
the river Sidon in the wilderness.
28 And Moroni placed spies round about, that he might know when the camp of the
Lamanites should come.
29 And now, as Moroni knew the intention of the Lamanites, that it was their
intention,
To destroy their brethren, or to subject them and bring them into
bondage,
That they might establish a kingdom unto themselves over all the land;
30 And he also knowing that it was the only desire of the Nephites,
To preserve
their lands, and their liberty, and their church,
Therefore he thought it no sin that he should defend them by stratagem;
Therefore, he found by his spies which
course the Lamanites were to take.
31 Therefore, he divided his army and brought a part over into the valley,
And
concealed them on the east, and on the south of the hill Riplah; and the remainder he concealed,
In the west valley, on the west of the river Sidon, and so down into the borders of the land Manti.
33 And thus having placed his army according to his desire, he was prepared to
meet them.
34 And it came to pass that the Lamanites came up on the north of the hill,
Where a part of the army of Moroni was concealed.
35 And as the Lamanites had passed the hill Riplah, and came into the valley,
And began to cross the river Sidon, the army which was concealed on the south of
the hill,
Which was led by a man whose name was Lehi, and he led his army forth,
And encircled the Lamanites about on the east in their rear.
36 And it came to pass that the Lamanites,
When they saw the Nephites coming
upon them in their rear,
Turned them about and began to contend with the army of
Lehi.
37 And the work of death commenced on both sides,
But it was more dreadful on
the part of the Lamanites,
For their nakedness was exposed to the heavy blows of
the Nephites,
With their swords and their cimeters, which brought death almost at
every stroke.
38 While on the other hand, there was now and then a man fell among the
Nephites,
By their swords and the loss of blood, they being shielded from the
more vital parts of the body,
Or the more vital parts of the body being shielded
from the strokes of the Lamanites,
By their breastplates, and their armshields,
and their head-plates;
And thus the Nephites did carry on the work of death
among the Lamanites.
39 And it came to pass that the Lamanites became frightened because of the
great destruction among them,
Even until they began to flee towards the river Sidon. And they were pursued by Lehi and his men;
And they were driven by Lehi into
the waters of Sidon, and they crossed the waters of Sidon.
And Lehi retained his
armies upon the bank of the river Sidon that they should not cross.
41 And it came to pass that Moroni and his army met the Lamanites in the valley,
On the other side of the river Sidon, and began to fall upon them and to slay
them.
42 And the Lamanites did flee again before them, towards the land of Manti;
And
they were met again by the armies of Moroni.
43 Now in this case the Lamanites did fight exceedingly;
Yea, never had the
Lamanites been known to fight,
With such exceedingly great strength and courage,
no, not even from the beginning.
44 And they were inspired by the Zoramites and the Amlicites, who were their
chief captains and leaders,
And by Zerahemnah, who was their chief captain, or
their chief leader and commander;
Yea, they did fight like dragons, and many of
the Nephites were slain by their hands,
Yea, for they did smite in two many of
their head-plates,
And they did pierce many of their breastplates,
And they did
smite off many of their arms;
And thus the Lamanites did smite in their fierce
anger.
45 Nevertheless, the Nephites were inspired by a better cause,
For they were not
fighting for monarchy nor power, but they were fighting,
For their homes and their
liberties, their wives and their children, and their all,
Yea, for their rites
of worship and their church.
46 And they were doing that which they felt was the duty,
Which they owed to
their God; for the Lord had said unto them,
And also unto their fathers, that: Inasmuch as ye are not guilty of the first offense,
Neither the second, ye shall
not suffer yourselves to be slain by the hands of your enemies.
47 And again, the Lord has said that: Ye shall defend your families even unto
bloodshed.
Therefore for this cause were the Nephites contending with the
Lamanites,
To defend themselves, and their families, and their lands,
Their
country, and their rights, and their religion.
48 And it came to pass that when the men of Moroni,
Saw the fierceness and
the anger of the Lamanites, they were about to shrink and flee from them.
And
Moroni, perceiving their intent, sent forth and inspired their hearts with these
thoughts──
Yea, the thoughts of their lands, their liberty, yea, their freedom
from bondage.
49 And it came to pass that they turned upon the Lamanites,
And they cried with
one voice unto the Lord their God,
For their liberty and their freedom from
bondage.
50 And they began to stand against the Lamanites with power;
And in that
selfsame hour that they cried unto the Lord for their freedom,
The Lamanites
began to flee before them; and they fled even to the waters of Sidon.
51 Now, the Lamanites were more numerous, yea, by more than double the number of
the Nephites;
Nevertheless, they were driven insomuch that they were gathered
together in one body in the valley,
Upon the bank by the river Sidon. Therefore the armies of Moroni encircled them about,
Yea, even on both sides
of the river, for behold, on the east were the men of Lehi.
53 Therefore when Zerahemnah saw the men of Lehi on the east of the river Sidon,
And the armies of Moroni on the west of the river Sidon,
That they were
encircled about by the Nephites,
They were struck with terror.
54 Now Moroni, when he saw their terror,
Commanded his men that they should stop
shedding their blood.
![]()
ALMA 44
1 AND it came to pass that they did stop,
And withdrew a pace from them, and
Moroni said unto Zerahemnah:
Behold, Zerahemnah, that we do not desire to be men
of blood;
Ye know that ye are in our hands, yet we do not desire to slay you.
2 Behold, we have not come out to battle against you that we might shed your
blood for power;
Neither do we desire to bring any one to the yoke of bondage.
But this is the very cause for which ye have come against us;
Yea, and ye are
angry with us because of our religion.
3 But now, ye behold that the Lord is with us;
And ye behold that he has
delivered you into our hands.
And now I would that ye should understand that this is done unto
us,
Because of our religion and our faith in Christ; and now ye
see that ye cannot destroy this our faith.
4 Now ye see that this is the true faith of God; yea, ye see that God will
support, and keep, and preserve us,
So long as we are faithful unto him, and
unto our faith, and our religion;
And never will the Lord suffer that we
should be destroyed,
Except we should fall into transgression and deny our faith.
5 And now, Zerahemnah, I command you, in the name of that all-powerful
God,
Who has strengthened our arms that we have gained power over you,
by our faith, by our religion,
And by our rites of worship, and by our church, and by the sacred
support,
Which we owe to our wives and our children, by that liberty,
Which binds us to our lands and our country;
Yea, and also by the maintenance of the sacred word of God,
To which we owe all our happiness; and by all that is most
dear unto us──
6 Yea, and this is not all; I command you by all the desires which ye have for
life,
That ye deliver up your weapons of war unto us, and we will seek not your
blood,
But we will spare your lives, if ye will go your way and come not again
to war against us.
7 And now, if ye do not this, behold, ye are in our hands, and I will
command my men that they should fall upon you,
And inflict the wounds of death in your bodies,
that ye may become extinct;
And then we will see who shall have power over this people;
Yea, we will see who shall be brought into bondage.
8 And now it came to pass that when Zerahemnah,
Had heard these sayings he came
forth and delivered up his sword,
And his cimeter, and his bow into the hands of
Moroni, and said unto him:
Behold, here are our weapons of war; we will deliver
them up unto you,
But we will not suffer ourselves to take an oath unto you,
Which we know that we shall break, and also our children;
But take our weapons
of war,
And suffer that we may depart into the wilderness;
Otherwise we will
retain our swords, and we will perish or conquer.
9 Behold, we are not of your faith; we do not believe that it is God that has
delivered us into your hands;
But we believe that it is your cunning that
has preserved you from our swords.
Behold, it is your breastplates and your shields
that have preserved you.
10 And now when Zerahemnah had made an end of speaking these words,
Moroni
returned the sword and the weapons of war,
Which he had received, unto Zerahemnah,
Saying: Behold, we will end the conflict.
11 Now I cannot recall the words which I have spoken,
Therefore as the Lord
liveth, ye shall not depart except ye depart,
With an oath that ye will not
return again against us to war.
Now as ye are in our hands we will spill your
blood upon the ground,
Or ye shall submit to the conditions which I have
proposed.
12 And now when Moroni had said these words,
Zerahemnah retained his sword, and
he was angry with Moroni,
And he rushed forward that he might slay Moroni; but
as he raised his sword,
Behold, one of Moroni's soldiers smote it even to the
earth, and it broke by the hilt;
And he also smote Zerahemnah that he took off
his scalp and it fell to the earth.
And Zerahemnah withdrew from before them
into the midst of his soldiers.
13 And it came to pass that the soldier who stood by,
Who smote off the scalp of Zerahemnah,
Took up the scalp from off the ground by the hair,
And laid it upon
the point of his sword, and stretched it forth unto them,
Saying unto them with
a loud voice: Even as this scalp has fallen to the earth,
Which is the scalp of your chief,
so shall ye fall to the earth,
Except ye will deliver up your weapons of war,
And
depart with a covenant of peace.
15 Now there were many, when they heard these words,
And saw the scalp which was
upon the sword, that were struck with fear;
And many came forth and threw down
their weapons of war at the feet of Moroni,
And entered into a covenant of
peace. And as many as entered into a covenant,
They suffered to depart into the
wilderness. Now it came to pass that Zerahemnah was exceedingly wroth,
And he did stir up
the remainder of his soldiers to anger, to contend more powerfully against the
Nephites.
17 And now Moroni was angry, because of the stubbornness of the Lamanites;
Therefore he commanded his people that they should fall upon them and slay them.
And it came to pass that they began to slay them;
Yea, and the Lamanites did
contend with their swords and their might.
18 But behold, their naked skins and their bare heads were exposed to the sharp
swords of the Nephites;
Yea, behold they were pierced and smitten, yea, and did
fall exceedingly fast,
Before the swords of the Nephites; and they began to be
swept down,
Even as the soldier of Moroni had prophesied.
19 Now Zerahemnah, when he saw that they were all about to be destroyed,
Cried
mightily unto Moroni, promising that he would covenant and also his people with
them,
If they would spare the remainder of their lives, that they never would
come to war again against them.
20 And it came to pass that Moroni caused that the work of death should cease
again among the people.
And he took the weapons of war from
the Lamanites;
And
after they had entered into a covenant with him of peace,
They were suffered to
depart into the wilderness. Now the number of their dead was not numbered,
Because of the greatness of the
number; yea, the number of their dead was exceedingly great,
Both on the Nephites and on
the Lamanites. And it came to pass that they did,
Cast their dead into the waters of Sidon,
And they have gone forth and are buried in the depths of the sea.
23 And the armies of the Nephites, or of Moroni, returned and came to their
houses and their lands.
24 And thus ended the eighteenth year of the reign of the judges over the people
of Nephi.
And thus ended the record of Alma, which was written upon the plates
of Nephi.
![]()
ALMA 45
1 Behold, now it came to pass that the people of Nephi were exceedingly
rejoiced,
Because the Lord had again delivered them out of the hands of their
enemies;
Therefore they gave thanks unto the Lord their God;
Yea, and they did
fast much and pray much,
And they did worship God with exceedingly great joy.
2 And it came to pass in the nineteenth year of the reign of the judges,
Over the
people of Nephi, that Alma came unto his son Helaman and said unto him:
Believest thou the words which I spake unto thee concerning those records which
have been kept?
3 And Helaman said unto him: Yea, I believe; and Alma said unto him again:
Believest thou in Jesus Christ, who shall come. And he said:
Yea, I believe all the words which thou hast spoken.
6 And Alma said unto him again: Will ye keep my commandments?
7 And he said: Yea, I will keep thy commandments with all my heart.
8 Then Alma said unto him: Blessed art thou;
And the Lord shall prosper thee in
this land.
9 But behold, I have somewhat to prophesy unto thee;
But what I prophesy unto
thee ye shall not make known;
Yea, what I prophesy unto thee, shall not be made
known,
Even until the prophesy is fulfilled; therefore write the words which I shall say.
10 And these are the words: Behold, I perceive that this very people, the
Nephites,
According to the spirit of revelation which is in me, in four hundred
years from the time,
That Jesus Christ shall manifest himself unto them, shall
dwindle in unbelief.
11 Yea, and then shall they see wars and pestilences,
Yea, famines and
bloodshed,
Even until the people of Nephi shall become extinct──
12 Yea, and this because they shall dwindle in unbelief and fall,
Into the works
of darkness, and lasciviousness, and all manner of iniquities;
Yea, I say unto
you, that because they shall sin against so great light and knowledge,
Yea, I
say unto you, that from that day, even the fourth generation,
Shall not all pass
away before this great iniquity shall come.
13 And when that great day cometh, behold, the time very soon cometh that those
who are now,
Or the seed of those who are now numbered among the people of
Nephi,
Shall no more be numbered among the people of Nephi.
14 But whosoever remaineth and is not destroyed in that great and dreadful day,
Shall be numbered among the Lamanites, and shall become like unto them,
All,
save it be a few who shall be called the disciples of the Lord;
And them shall
the Lamanites pursue even until they shall become extinct.
And now, because of
iniquity this prophecy shall be fulfilled.
15 And now it came to pass that after Alma,
Had said these things to Helaman,
He
blessed him, and also his other sons;
And he also blessed the earth for the
righteous' sake.
16 And he said: Thus saith the Lord God──Cursed shall be the land,
Yea, this land, unto every nation, kindred, tongue, and people,
Unto destruction, which do
wickedly, when they are fully ripe; and as I have said,
So shall it be; for this
is the cursing and the blessing of God upon the land,
For the Lord cannot look
upon sin with the least degree of allowance.
17 And now, when Alma had said these words he blessed the church,
Yea, all those
who should stand fast in the faith from that time henceforth.
18 And when Alma had done this he departed out of the land of Zarahemla,
As if
to go into the land of Melek; and it came to pass,
That he was never heard of
more;
As to his death or burial we know not of.
19 Behold, this we know, that he was a righteous man;
And the saying went abroad
in the church,
That he was taken up by the Spirit,
Or buried by the hand of the
Lord, even as Moses.
But behold, the scriptures saith the Lord took Moses unto
himself;
And we suppose that he has also received Alma in the spirit, unto
himself;
Therefore, for this cause we know nothing concerning his death and
burial.
20 And now it came to pass in the commencement of the nineteenth year,
Of the
reign of the judges over the people of Nephi,
That Helaman went forth among the
people,
To declare the word unto them.
21 For behold, because of their wars with the Lamanites,
And the many little
dissensions and disturbances which had been among the people,
It became
expedient that the word of God should be declared among them,
Yea, and that a
regulation should be made throughout the church.
22 Therefore, Helaman and his brethren went forth,
To establish the church again
in all the land,
Yea, in every city throughout all the land,
Which was possessed
by the people of Nephi.
And it came to pass that they did appoint priests,
And teachers throughout all the land, over all the churches.
23 And now it came to pass that after Helaman and his brethren had appointed
priests,
And teachers over the churches that there arose a dissension among them,
And they would not give heed to the words of Helaman and his brethren;
24 But they grew proud, being lifted up in their hearts,
Because of their
exceedingly great riches;
Therefore they grew rich in their own eyes,
And would
not give heed to their words,
To walk uprightly before God.
![]()
ALMA 46
1 AND it came to pass that as many as would not hearken to the words of Helaman,
And his brethren were gathered together against their brethren.
2 And now behold, they were exceedingly wroth,
Insomuch that they were determined to slay them.
3 Now the leader of those who were wroth against their brethren,
Was a large and
a strong man, and his name was Amalickiah.
4 And Amalickiah was desirous to be a king;
And those people who were wroth,
Were
also desirous that he should be their king;
And they were the greater part of
them the lower judges of the land,
And they were seeking for power. And they had been led by the flatteries of Amalickiah,
That if they would
support him and establish him to be their king,
That he would make them rulers
over the people.
6 Thus they were led away by Amalickiah to dissensions,
Notwithstanding the
preaching of Helaman and his brethren,
Yea, notwithstanding their exceedingly
great care over the church,
For they were high priests over the church. And there were many in the church,
Who believed in the flattering words of Amalickiah; therefore they dissented
even from the church;
And thus were the
affairs of the people of Nephi exceedingly precarious and dangerous,
Notwithstanding their great victory which they had had over the Lamanites,
And
their great rejoicings which they had had,
Because of their deliverance by the
hand of the Lord.
8 Thus we see how quick the children of men do forget the Lord their God,
Yea,
how quick to do iniquity, and to be led away by the evil one.
9 Yea, and we also see the great wickedness one very wicked man,
Can cause to
take place among the children of men.
10 Yea, we see that Amalickiah, because he was a man of cunning device,
And a man
of many flattering words, that he led away the hearts of many people to do
wickedly;
Yea, and to seek to destroy the church of God, and to destroy the
foundation of liberty,
Which God had granted unto them, or which blessing God had
sent,
Upon the face of the land for the righteous' sake.
11 And now it came to pass that when Moroni,
Who was the chief commander of the
armies of the Nephites,
Had heard of these dissensions, he was angry with Amalickiah.
12 And it came to pass that he rent his coat; and he took a piece thereof, and
wrote upon it──
In memory of our God, our religion, and freedom, and our peace,
our wives, and our children──
And he fastened it upon the end of a pole; and he fastened on his head-plate,
And his breastplate, and his shields, and
girded on his armor about his loins;
And he took the pole which had on the end
thereof his rent coat,
(and he called it the title of liberty)
And he bowed
himself to the earth, and he prayed mightily,
Unto his God for the blessings of
liberty to rest upon his brethren,
So long as there should a band of Christians
remain to possess the land──
14 For thus were all the true believers of Christ, who belonged to the church of
God,
Called by those who did not belong to the church,
15 And those who did belong to the church were faithful;
Yea, all those who were
true believers in Christ took upon them,
Gladly, the name of Christ, or
Christians as they were called,
Because of their belief in Christ who should
come.
16 And therefore, at this time,
Moroni prayed that the cause of the Christians,
And the freedom of the land might be favored.
17 And it came to pass that when he had poured out his soul to God,
He named all
the land which was south of the land Desolation, yea, and in fine,
All the land,
both on the north and on the south──A chosen land, and the land of liberty.
18 And he said: Surely God shall not suffer that we, who are despised because we
take upon us the name of Christ,
Shall be trodden down and destroyed, until we
bring it upon us by our own transgressions.
19 And when Moroni had said these words, he went forth among the people,
Waving
the rent part of his garment in the air,
That all might see the writing,
Which he
had written upon the rent part,
And crying with a loud voice, saying:
20 Behold, whosoever will maintain this title upon the land,
Let them come forth
in the strength of the Lord, and enter into a covenant,
That they will maintain
their rights, and their religion, that the Lord God may bless them.
21 And it came to pass that when Moroni had proclaimed these words, behold, the
people,
Came running together with their armor girded about their loins,
Rending
their garments in token, or as a covenant,
That they would not forsake the Lord
their God;
Or, in other words, if they should transgress the commandments of
God,
Or fall into transgression, and be ashamed to take upon them the name of
Christ,
The Lord should rend them even as they had rent their garments.
22 Now this was the covenant which they made,
And they cast their garments at
the feet of Moroni, saying:
We covenant with our God, that we shall be
destroyed, even as our brethren in the land northward,
If we shall fall into
transgression; yea, he may cast us at the feet of our enemies,
Even as we have
cast our garments at thy feet to be trodden under foot,
If we shall fall into
transgression. Moroni said unto them:
Behold, we are a remnant of the seed of Jacob;
Yea, we
are a remnant of the seed of Joseph,
Whose coat was rent by his brethren into
many pieces;
Yea, and now behold, let us remember to keep the commandments of
God,
Or our garments shall be rent by our brethren, and we be cast into prison, or be sold,
or be slain.
24 Yea, let us preserve our liberty as a remnant of Joseph;
Yea, let us remember
the words of Jacob, before his death,
For behold, he saw that a part of the
remnant,
Of the coat of Joseph was preserved and had not decayed.
And he
said──Even as this remnant of garment of my son hath been preserved,
So shall a
remnant of the seed of my son be preserved by the hand of God, and be taken unto
himself,
While the remainder of the seed of Joseph shall perish, even as the
remnant of his garment.
25 Now behold, this giveth my soul sorrow; nevertheless, my soul hath joy in my
son,
Because of that part of his seed which shall be taken unto God.
26 Now behold, this was the language of Jacob.
27 And now who knoweth but what the remnant of the seed of Joseph,
Which shall
perish as his garment, are those who have dissented from us?
Yea, and even it
shall be ourselves if we do not stand fast in the faith of Christ.
28 And now it came to pass that when Moroni had said these words he went forth,
And also sent forth in all the parts of the land where there were dissensions,
And gathered together all the people who were desirous to maintain their
liberty,
To stand against Amalickiah and those who had dissented, who were
called Amalickiahites.
29 And it came to pass that when Amalickiah saw that the people of Moroni were
more numerous,
Than the Amalickiahites──and he also saw that his people were
doubtful,
Concerning the justice of the cause in which they had
undertaken──
Therefore, fearing that he should not gain the point,
He took those
of his people who would and departed into the land of Nephi.
30 Now Moroni thought it was not expedient that the Lamanites should have any
more strength;
Therefore he thought to cut off the people of Amalickiah, or to
take them and bring them back,
And put Amalickiah to death; yea, for he knew
that he would stir up the Lamanites to anger against them,
And cause them to
come to battle against them;
And this he knew that Amalickiah would do that he
might obtain his purposes.
31 Therefore Moroni thought it was expedient that he should take his armies,
Who
had gathered themselves together, and armed themselves,
And entered into a
covenant to keep the peace──
And it came to pass that he took his army,
And
marched out with his tents into the wilderness,
To cut off the course of Amalickiah in the wilderness.
32 And it came to pass that he did according to his desires,
And marched forth
into the wilderness, and headed the armies of Amalickiah.
33 And it came to pass that Amalickiah fled with a small number of his men,
And
the remainder were delivered up into the hands of Moroni,
And were taken back
into the land of Zarahemla.
34 Now, Moroni being a man who was appointed by the chief judges and the voice
of the people,
Therefore he had power according to his will with the armies of
the Nephites,
To establish and to exercise authority over them.
35 And it came to pass that whomsoever of the Amalickiahites,
That would not
enter into a covenant to support the cause of freedom,
That they might maintain
a free government, he caused to be put to death;
And there were but few who
denied the covenant of freedom.
36 And it came to pass also, that he caused the title of liberty,
To be hoisted
upon every tower which was in all the land,
Which was possessed by the Nephites;
And thus Moroni planted,
The standard of liberty among the Nephites.
37 And they began to have peace again in the land;
And thus they did maintain peace in the land,
Until nearly the end of the nineteenth year of the reign of
the judges.
38 And Helaman and the high priests did also maintain order in the church;
Yea, even for the space of four years did they have much peace and rejoicing in the
church.
39 And it came to pass that there were many who died, firmly believing,
That
their souls were redeemed by the Lord Jesus Christ;
Thus they went out of the
world rejoicing; and there were some who died,
With fevers, which at some seasons of the year
were very frequent in the land──
But not so much so with fevers, because of the
excellent qualities of the many plants,
And roots which God had prepared to
remove the cause of diseases,
To which men were subject by the nature of the
climate──
41 But there were many who died with old age;
And those who died in the faith of
Christ,
Are happy in him, as we must needs suppose.
![]()
ALMA 47
1 NOW we will return in our record to Amalickiah,
And those who had fled with him into the wilderness;
For, behold, he had taken those who went with him,
And went
up in the land of Nephi among the Lamanites,
And did stir up the Lamanites to
anger against the people of Nephi,
Insomuch that the king of the Lamanites sent
a proclamation throughout all his land,
Among all his people, that they should
gather themselves together again to go to battle against the Nephites.
2 And it came to pass that when the proclamation had gone forth among them they
were exceedingly afraid;
Yea, they feared to displease the king, and they also
feared to go to battle against the Nephites,
Lest they should lose their lives. And it came to pass that they would not,
Or the more part of them would not,
obey the commandments of the king.
3 And now it came to pass that the king was wroth because of their disobedience;
Therefore he gave Amalickiah the command of that part of his army which was
obedient unto his commands,
And commanded him that he should go forth and compel
them to arms.
4 Now behold, this was the desire of Amalickiah; for he being a very subtle man
to do evil,
Therefore he laid the plan in his heart to dethrone the king of the
Lamanites.
5 And now he had got the command of those parts of the Lamanites who were in
favor of the king;
And he sought to gain favor of those who were not obedient;
Therefore he went forward to the place,
Which was called Onidah,
For thither had
all the Lamanites fled;
For they discovered the army coming, and supposing,
That
they were coming to destroy them, therefore they fled to Onidah,
To the place of
arms. And they had appointed a man,
To be a king and a leader over them,
Being fixed
in their minds with a determined resolution,
That they would not be subjected to
go against the Nephites.
7 And it came to pass that they had gathered themselves
together,
Upon the top of
the mount which was called Antipas, in preparation to battle.
8 Now it was not Amalickiah's intention to give them battle,
According to the
commandments of the king;
But behold, it was his intention,
To gain favor with the armies of the Lamanites,
That he might place himself at their head and
dethrone the king,
And take possession of the kingdom.
9 And behold, it came to pass that he caused his army,
To pitch their tents in
the valley which was near the mount Antipas.
10 And it came to pass that when it was night he sent a secret embassy into the
mount Antipas,
Desiring that the leader of those who were upon the mount, whose
name was Lehonti,
That he should come down to the foot of the mount, for he
desired to speak with him.
11 And it came to pass that when Lehonti received the message he durst not go
down to the foot of the mount.
And it came to pass that Amalickiah sent again
the second time, desiring him to come down.
And it came to pass that Lehonti
would not; and he sent again the third time.
12 And it came to pass that when Amalickiah found that he could not get Lehonti,
To come down off from the mount, he went up into the mount,
Nearly to Lehonti's
camp; and he sent again, the fourth time his message unto Lehonti,
Desiring that
he would come down, and that he would bring his guards with him.
13 And it came to pass that when Lehonti had come down with his guards to
Amalickiah,
That Amalickiah desired him to come down with his army in the
night-time,
And surround those men in their camps,
Over whom the king had given
him command,
And that he would deliver them up into Lehonti's hands,
If he would
make him (Amalickiah) a second leader over the whole army.
14 And it came to pass that Lehonti came down with his men and surrounded the
men of Amalickiah,
So that before they awoke at the dawn of the day they were
surrounded by the armies of Lehonti.
15 And it came to pass that when they saw that they were surrounded,
They plead
with Amalickiah that he would suffer them to fall in with their brethren,
That
they might not be destroyed. Now this was the very thing which Amalickiah desired.
16 And it came to pass that he delivered his men, contrary to the commands of
the king.
Now this was the thing that Amalickiah desired,
That he might
accomplish his designs in dethroning the king.
17 Now it was the custom among the Lamanites, if their chief leader was killed,
To appoint the second leader to be their chief leader. And it came to pass that Amalickiah,
Caused that one of his servants should
administer poison by degrees to Lehonti, that he died.
19 Now, when Lehonti was dead, the Lamanites appointed Amalickiah to be their
leader and their chief commander.
20 And it came to pass that Amalickiah marched with his armies (for he had
gained his desires)
To the land of Nephi, to the city of Nephi, which was the
chief city.
21 And the king came out to meet him with his guards,
For he supposed that Amalickiah had fulfilled his commands,
and that Amalickiah had gathered together so great an army to go against the Nephites
to battle.
22 But behold, as the king came out to meet him Amalickiah caused that his
servants,
Should go forth to meet the king. And they went and bowed themselves
before the king,
As if to reverence him because of his greatness. And it came to pass,
That the king put forth his hand to raise them,
As was
the custom with the Lamanites,
As a token of peace,
Which custom they had taken
from the Nephites.
24 And it came to pass that when he had raised the first from the ground,
Behold
he stabbed the king to the heart;
And he fell to the earth.
25 Now the servants of the king fled;
And the servants of Amalickiah raised a
cry, saying:
26 Behold, the servants of the king have stabbed him to the heart,
And he has
fallen and they have fled; behold, come and see.
27 And it came to pass that Amalickiah commanded that his armies,
Should march
forth and see what had happened to the king;
And when they had come to the spot,
And found the king lying in his gore,
Amalickiah pretended to be wroth, and
said:
Whosoever loved the king, let him go forth,
And pursue his servants that
they may be slain.
28 And it came to pass that all they who loved the king,
When they heard these words, came forth and pursued after the servants of the king.
29 Now when the servants of the king saw an army pursuing after them,
They were
frightened again, and fled into the wilderness,
And came over into the land of
Zarahemla and joined the people of Ammon.
30 And the army which pursued after them returned, having pursued after them in
vain;
And thus Amalickiah, by his fraud, gained the hearts of the people.
31 And it came to pass on the morrow he entered the city Nephi,
With his armies, and took possession of the city.
32 And now it came to pass that the queen,
When she had heard that the king was
slain──
For Amalickiah had sent an embassy to the queen,
Informing her that the
king had been slain by his servants,
That he had pursued them with his army, but
it was in vain, and they had made their escape──
33 Therefore, when the queen had received this message she sent unto Amalickiah,
Desiring him that he would spare the people of the city;
And she also desired him that he should come in unto her;
And she also desired him,
That he should
bring witnesses with him,
To testify concerning the death of the king.
34 And it came to pass that Amalickiah took the same servant that slew the king,
And all them who were with him, and went in unto the queen, unto the place where
she sat;
And they all testified unto her that the king was slain by his own
servants;
And they said also: They have fled; does not this testify against
them?
And thus they satisfied the queen concerning the death of the king.
35 And it came to pass that Amalickiah sought the favor of the queen,
And took
her unto him to wife; and thus by his fraud,
And by the assistance of his
cunning servants,
He obtained the kingdom; yea, he was acknowledged king,
Throughout all the land, among all the people of the Lamanites,
Who were
composed of the Lamanites and the Lemuelites and the Ishmaelites,
And all the
dissenters of the Nephites, from the reign of Nephi down to the present time.
36 Now these dissenters, having the same instruction and the same information of
the Nephites,
Yea, having been instructed in the same knowledge of the Lord,
nevertheless, it is strange to relate,
Not long after their dissensions they
became more hardened and impenitent,
And more wild, wicked and ferocious than
the Lamanites──
Drinking in with the traditions of the Lamanites;
Giving way to
indolence,
And all manner of lasciviousness;
Yea, entirely forgetting the Lord
their God.
![]()
ALMA 48
1 AND now it came to pass that, as soon as Amalickiah had obtained the kingdom,
He began to inspire the hearts of the Lamanites against the people of Nephi;
Yea, he did appoint men to speak unto the Lamanites,
From their towers, against
the Nephites.
2 And thus he did inspire their hearts against the Nephites,
Insomuch that in
the latter end of the nineteenth year of the reign of the judges,
He having
accomplished his designs thus far, yea, having been made king over the
Lamanites,
He sought also to reign over all the land, yea, and all the people, who were in the land,
The Nephites as well as the Lamanites. Therefore he had
accomplished his design,
For he had hardened the hearts of the Lamanites, and blinded their
minds,
And stirred them up to anger, insomuch that he had gathered,
Together a numerous host to go to battle against the
Nephites.
4 For he was determined, because of the greatness of the number of his people,
To overpower the Nephites and to bring them into bondage.
5 And thus he did appoint chief captains of the Zoramites,
They being the most acquainted with the strength of the Nephites,
And their places of resort, and the weakest parts of their cities;
Therefore he appointed them to be chief
captains over his armies.
6 And it came to pass that they took their camp,
And moved forth toward
the land of Zarahemla in the wilderness.
7 Now it came to pass that while Amalickiah had thus been obtaining power by
fraud and deceit,
Moroni, on the other hand, had been preparing the minds of the
people to be faithful,
Unto the Lord their God; yea, he had been strengthening the armies of the Nephites,
And erecting small
forts, or places of resort; throwing up banks of earth,
Round about to enclose
his armies, and also building walls of stone,
To encircle them about, round about
their cities,
And the borders of their lands; yea, all round about the land.
9 And in their weakest fortifications he did place the greater number of men;
And thus he did fortify and strengthen the land which was possessed by the
Nephites.
10 And thus he was preparing to support their liberty, their lands, their wives,
and their children,
And their peace, and that they might live unto the Lord
their God,
And that they might maintain that which was called by their enemies
the cause of Christians.
11 And Moroni was a strong and a mighty man; he was a man of a perfect
understanding;
Yea, a man that did not delight in bloodshed;
A man whose soul
did joy in the liberty and the freedom,
Of his country, and his brethren from
bondage and slavery;
12 Yea, a man whose heart did swell with thanksgiving to his God,
For the many
privileges and blessings which he bestowed upon his people;
A man who did labor
exceedingly for the welfare and safety of his people.
13 Yea, and he was a man who was firm in the faith of Christ,
And he had sworn
with an oath to defend his people,
His rights, and his country, and his
religion,
Even to the loss of his blood.
14 Now the Nephites were taught,
To defend themselves against their enemies,
Even
to the shedding of blood if it were necessary;
Yea, and they were also taught
never to give an offense,
Yea, and never to raise the sword except it were
against an enemy,
Except it were to preserve their lives.
15 And this was their faith,
That by so doing God would prosper them in the
land,
Or in other words, if they were faithful in keeping the commandments of
God,
That he would prosper them in the land; yea, warn them to flee, or to
prepare for war,
According to their danger; and also, that God would make it known unto them,
Whither they should go to
defend themselves against their enemies,
And by so doing, the Lord would deliver
them;
And this was the faith of Moroni,
And his heart did glory in it;
Not in
the shedding of blood but in doing good,
In preserving his people, yea, in
keeping the commandments of God,
Yea, and resisting iniquity. Yea, verily, verily I say unto you, if all men had been,
And were, and ever
would be, like unto Moroni,
Behold, the very powers of hell would have been
shaken forever;
Yea, the devil would never have power over the hearts of the
children of men.
18 Behold, he was a man like unto Ammon, the son of Mosiah,
Yea, and even the
other sons of Mosiah,
Yea, and also Alma and his sons,
For they were all men of
God.
19 Now behold, Helaman and his brethren,
Were no less serviceable unto the people
than was Moroni;
For they did preach the word of God, and they did baptize unto
repentance,
All men whosoever would hearken unto their words. And thus they went forth,
And the people did humble themselves because of
their words,
Insomuch that they were highly favored of the Lord,
And thus they
were free from wars,
And contentions among themselves,
Yea, even for the space of
four years.
21 But, as I have said, in the latter end of the nineteenth year,
Yea,
notwithstanding their peace amongst themselves, they were compelled,
Reluctantly to contend with their brethren, the Lamanites.
22 Yea, and in fine, their wars never did cease,
For the space of many years with
the Lamanites,
Notwithstanding their much reluctance.
23 Now, they were sorry to take up arms against the Lamanites,
Because they did
not delight in the shedding of blood; yea, and this was not all──
They were sorry
to be the means of sending so many of their brethren,
Out of this world into an
eternal world, unprepared to meet their God.
24 Nevertheless, they could not suffer to lay down their lives,
That their wives
and their children should be massacred,
By the barbarous cruelty of those,
Who
were once their brethren,
Yea, and had dissented from their church,
And had left
them and had gone to destroy them by joining the Lamanites.
25 Yea, they could not bear that their brethren should rejoice over the blood of
the Nephites,
So long as there were any who should keep the commandments of God,
For the promise of the Lord was,
If they should keep his commandments they
should prosper in the land.
![]()
ALMA 49
1 AND now it came to pass in the eleventh month of the nineteenth year, on the
tenth day of the month,
` The armies of the Lamanites were seen approaching
towards the land of Ammonihah.
2 And behold, the city had been rebuilt,
And Moroni had stationed an army by the
borders of the city,
And they had cast up dirt round about to shield them from
the arrows and the stones of the Lamanites;
For behold, they fought with stones
and with arrows.
3 Behold, I said the city of Ammonihah had been rebuilt; I say unto you,
yea, that it was in part rebuilt;
And because the Lamanites had destroyed it
once because of the iniquity of the people;
They supposed that it would again
become an easy prey for them.
4 But behold, how great was their disappointment;
For behold, the Nephites had
dug up a ridge of earth round about them,
Which was so high that the Lamanites
could not cast their stones and their arrows at them,
That they might take
effect, neither could they come upon them save it was by their place of
entrance.
5 Now at this time the chief captains of the Lamanites were astonished
exceedingly,
Because of the wisdom of the Nephites in preparing their places of security.
6 Now the leaders of the Lamanites had supposed,
Because of the greatness of
their numbers, yea, they supposed,
That they should be privileged to come upon
them, as they had hitherto done;
Yea, and they had also prepared themselves with
shields, and with breastplates;
And they had also prepared themselves with
garments of skins,
Yea, very thick garments to cover their nakedness.
7 And being thus prepared they supposed,
That they should easily overpower and
subject their brethren,
To the yoke of bondage, or slay and massacre them
according to their pleasure.
8 But behold, to their uttermost astonishment, they were prepared for them,
In a
manner which never had been known among the children of Lehi.
Now they were
prepared for the Lamanites,
To battle after the manner of the instructions of
Moroni.
9 And it came to pass that the Lamanites, or the Amalickiahites,
Were
exceedingly astonished at their manner of preparation for war.
10 Now, if king Amalickiah had come down out of the land of Nephi, at the head
of his army,
Perhaps he would have caused the Lamanites to have attacked the
Nephites at the city of Ammonihah;
For behold, he did care not for the blood of
his people.
11 But behold, Amalickiah did not come down himself to battle.
And behold, his chief captains durst not attack the Nephites at the city of Ammonihah,
For
Moroni had altered the management of affairs among the Nephites,
Insomuch that
the Lamanites were disappointed,
In their places of retreat,
And they could not
come upon them.
12 Therefore they retreated into the wilderness,
And took their camp and marched
towards the land of Noah,
Supposing that to be the next best place for them to
come against the Nephites.
13 For they knew not that Moroni had fortified,
Or had built forts of security,
For every city in all the land round about;
Therefore, they marched forward to
the land of Noah,
With a firm determination; yea, their chief captains came
forward,
And took an oath that they would destroy the people of that city.
14 But behold, to their astonishment, the city of Noah,
Which had hitherto been
a weak place,
Had now, by the means of Moroni, become strong,
Yea, even to
exceed the strength of the city Ammonihah.
15 And now, behold, this was wisdom in Moroni; for he had supposed,
That they
would be frightened at the city Ammonihah;
And as the city of Noah had hitherto
been the weakest part of the land,
Therefore they would march thither to battle;
and thus it was according to his desires.
16 And behold, Moroni had appointed Lehi to be chief captain over the men of
that city;
And it was that same Lehi who fought with the Lamanites,
In the valley
on the east of the river Sidon.
17 And now behold it came to pass, that when the Lamanites had found,
That Lehi
commanded the city they were again disappointed, for they feared Lehi
exceedingly;
Nevertheless their chief captains had sworn with an oath to attack
the city;
Therefore, they brought up their armies.
18 Now behold, the Lamanites could not get into their forts of security,
By any
other way save by the entrance, because of the highness of the bank which had
been thrown up,
And the depth of the ditch which had been dug round about, save
it were by the entrance.
19 And thus were the Nephites prepared to destroy all such as should attempt,
To
climb up to enter the fort by any other way,
By casting over stones and arrows
at them. Thus they were prepared,
Yea, a body of their strongest men, with their
swords and their slings, to smite down all,
Who should attempt to come into their
place of security by the place of entrance;
And thus were they prepared to
defend themselves against the Lamanites.
21 And it came to pass that the captains of the Lamanites,
Brought up their armies before the place of entrance,
And began to contend with the Nephites,
To
get into their place of security;
But behold, they were driven back from time to time,
Insomuch that they were slain with an immense slaughter.
22 Now when they found that they could not obtain power over the Nephites by the
pass,
They began to dig down their banks of earth that they might obtain a pass
to their armies,
That they might have an equal chance to fight; but behold, in
these attempts,
They were swept off by the stones and arrows which were thrown at
them;
And instead of filling up their ditches by pulling down the banks
of earth,
They were filled up in a measure with their dead and wounded bodies.
23 Thus the Nephites had all power over their enemies; and thus the Lamanites,
Did attempt to destroy the Nephites until their chief captains were all slain;
Yea, and more than a thousand of the Lamanites were slain; while, on the other
hand,
There was not a single soul of the Nephites which was slain.
24 There were about fifty who were wounded,
Who had been exposed to the arrows of the Lamanites through the pass,
But they were shielded by their shields, and their breastplates, and
their head-plates,
Insomuch that their wounds were upon
their legs, many of which were very severe.
25 And it came to pass, that when the Lamanites saw that their chief captains
were all slain,
They fled into the wilderness. And it came to pass that they
returned to the land of Nephi,
To inform their king, Amalickiah, who was
a Nephite by birth, concerning their great loss.
26 And it came to pass that he was exceedingly angry with his people,
Because he
had not obtained his desire over the Nephites;
He had not subjected them to the
yoke of bondage.
27 Yea, he was exceedingly wroth,
And he did curse God, and also Moroni,
Swearing with an oath that he would drink his blood;
And this because Moroni had
kept the commandments of God,
In preparing for the safety of his people. And it came to pass,
That on the other hand, the people of Nephi did thank
the Lord their God,
Because of his matchless power in delivering them from the
hands of their enemies.
29 And thus ended the nineteenth year of the reign of the judges over the people
of Nephi.
30 Yea, and there was continual peace among them, and exceedingly great
prosperity in the church,
Because of their heed and diligence which they gave
unto the word of God,
Which was declared unto them by Helaman,
And Shiblon, and
Corianton, and Ammon and his brethren,
Yea, and by all those who had been
ordained by the holy order of God,
Being baptized unto repentance and sent
forth to preach among the people.
![]()
ALMA 50
1 AND now it came to pass that Moroni did not stop making preparations for war,
Or to defend his people
against the Lamanites; for he caused that his armies,
Should commence in the commencement of the twentieth year
of the reign of the judges,
That they should commence in digging up heaps of earth round about
all the cities,
Throughout all the land which was possessed by the Nephites.
2 And upon the top of these ridges of earth,
He caused that there should be
timbers,
Yea, works of timbers built up to the height of a man,
Round about the
cities. And he caused that upon those works of timbers,
There should be a frame of pickets built upon the timbers round about; and they were strong and high.
4 And he caused towers to be erected that overlooked those works of pickets,
And
he caused places of security to be built upon those towers,
That the stones and
the arrows of the Lamanites could not hurt them.
5 And they were prepared that they could cast stones from the top thereof,
According to their pleasure and their strength, and slay him who should attempt
to approach the city.
6 Thus Moroni did prepare strongholds against the coming of their enemies,
Round
about every city in all the land. And it came to pass,
That Moroni caused that his armies,
Should go forth into the east wilderness;
Yea, and they went forth and drove all the Lamanites,
Who were in the east wilderness into their own lands, which were
south of the land of Zarahemla.
8 And the land of Nephi did run in a straight course from the east sea to the
west.
9 And it came to pass that when Moroni had driven all the Lamanites out of the
east wilderness,
Which was north of the lands of their own possessions, he
caused that the inhabitants,
Who were in the land of Zarahemla and in the land
round about,
Should go forth into the east wilderness,
Even to the borders by the
seashore, and possess the land.
10 And he also placed armies on the south, in the borders of their possessions,
And caused them to erect fortifications that they might secure their armies,
And
their people from the hands of their enemies.
11 And thus he cut off all the strongholds of the Lamanites in the east
wilderness,
Yea, and also on the west, fortifying the line between the Nephites
and the Lamanites,
Between the land of Zarahemla and the land of Nephi,
From the
west sea, running by the head of the river Sidon──
The Nephites possessing all the land northward, yea, even all the land,
Which was northward of the land
Bountiful, according to their pleasure.
12 Thus Moroni, with his armies, which did increase daily because of the
assurance of protection,
Which his works did bring forth unto them, did seek to
cut off the strength,
And the power of the Lamanites from off the lands of their
possessions,
That they should have no power upon the lands of their possession.
13 And it came to pass that the Nephites began the foundation of a city,
And
they called the name of the city Moroni; and it was by the east sea;
And it was
on the south by the line of the possessions of the Lamanites.
14 And they also began a foundation for a city between the city of Moroni and
the city of Aaron,
Joining the borders of Aaron and Moroni; and they called the
name of the city, or the land, Nephihah.
15 And they also began in that same year to build many cities on the north,
One
in a particular manner which they called Lehi,
Which was in the north by the
borders of the seashore.
16 And thus ended the twentieth year.
17 And in these prosperous circumstances were the people of Nephi,
In the
commencement of the twenty and first year of the reign of the judges over the
people of Nephi.
18 And they did prosper exceedingly, and they became exceedingly rich;
Yea, and
they did multiply and wax strong in the land.
19 And thus we see how merciful and just are all the dealings of the Lord,
To
the fulfilling of all his words unto the children of men;
Yea, we can behold that his words are
verified,
Even at this time which he spake unto Lehi,
Saying: Blessed art thou and thy children;
And they shall be blessed, inasmuch as
they shall keep my commandments,
They shall prosper in the land. But remember, inasmuch
as they will not keep my commandments,
They shall be cut off from the presence of the Lord.
21 And we see that these promises have been verified to the people of Nephi;
For
it has been their quarrelings and their contentions,
Yea, their murderings, and
their plunderings,
Their idolatry, their whoredoms,
And their abominations, which were among themselves,
Which brought upon their wars and their
destructions.
22 And those who were faithful in keeping the commandments of the Lord were
delivered at all times,
Whilst thousands of their wicked brethren have been
consigned to bondage,
Or to perish by the sword, or to dwindle in unbelief, and
mingle with the Lamanites.
23 But behold there never was a happier time among the people of Nephi,
Since
the days of Nephi, than in the days of Moroni, yea, even at this time,
In the
twenty and first year of the reign of the judges.
24 And it came to pass that the twenty and second year,
Of the reign of the
judges also ended in peace;
Yea, and also the twenty and third year.
25 And it came to pass that in the commencement,
Of the twenty and fourth year of
the reign of the judges,
There would also have been peace among the people of
Nephi,
Had it not been for a contention which took place among them,
Concerning
the land of Lehi, and the land of Morianton,
Which joined upon the borders of
Lehi;
Both of which were on the borders by the seashore.
26 For behold, the people who possessed the land of Morianton,
Did claim a part
of the land of Lehi; therefore there began to be a warm contention,
Between them,
insomuch that the people of Morianton,
Took up arms against their brethren,
And
they were determined by the sword to slay them.
27 But behold, the people who possessed the land of Lehi fled to the camp of
Moroni,
And appealed unto him for assistance; for behold they were not in the
wrong.
28 And it came to pass that when the people of Morianton,
Who were led by a man
whose name was Morianton,
Found that the people of Lehi had fled to the camp of
Moroni,
They were exceedingly fearful lest the army of Moroni should come
upon them and destroy them.
29 Therefore, Morianton put it into their hearts that they should flee to the
land which was northward,
Which was covered with large bodies of water, and take
possession of the land which was northward.
30 And behold, they would have carried this plan into effect,
(which would have
been a cause to have been lamented)
But behold, Morianton being a man of much
passion,
Therefore he was angry with one of his maid servants,
And he fell upon
her and beat her much.
31 And it came to pass that she fled,
And came over to the camp of Moroni,
And
told Moroni all things concerning the matter,
And also concerning their
intentions to flee into the land northward.
32 Now behold, the people who were in the land Bountiful, or rather Moroni,
Feared that they would hearken to the words of Morianton, and unite with his
people,
And thus he would obtain possession of those parts of the land,
Which
would lay a foundation for serious consequences among the people of Nephi,
Yea,
which consequences would lead to the overthrow of their liberty.
33 Therefore Moroni sent an army, with their camp,
To head the people of Morianton,
To stop their flight into the land northward.
34 And it came to pass that they did not head them,
Until they had come to the
borders of the land Desolation;
And there they did head them, by the narrow pass
which led by the sea,
Into the land northward, yea, by the sea, on the west and
on the east.
35 And it came to pass that the army which was sent by Moroni,
Which was led by
a man whose name was Teancum,
Did meet the people of Morianton;
And so stubborn
were the people of Morianton,
(being inspired by his wickedness and his
flattering words)
That a battle commenced between them, in the which Teancum did
slay Morianton,
And defeat his army and took them prisoners, and returned to the
camp of Moroni.
And thus ended the twenty and fourth year of the reign of the
judges over the people of Nephi.
36 And thus were the people of Morianton brought back. And upon their
covenanting,
To keep the peace they were restored to the land of Morianton,
And a
union took place between them, and the people of Lehi;
And they were also
restored to their lands.
37 And it came to pass that in the same year that the people of Nephi,
Had peace
restored unto them, that Nephihah, the second chief judge, died,
Having filled
the judgment-seat with perfect uprightness before God.
38 Nevertheless, he had refused Alma to take possession of those records,
And
those things which were esteemed by Alma and his fathers to be most sacred;
Therefore Alma had conferred them upon his son, Helaman.
39 Behold, it came to pass that the son of Nephihah,
Was appointed to fill the
judgment-seat,
In the stead of his father;
Yea, he was appointed chief judge and
governor,
Over the people, with an oath and sacred ordinance to judge
righteously,
And to keep the peace and the freedom of the people, and to grant
unto them their sacred privileges,
To worship the Lord their God, yea, to support
and maintain the cause of God all his days,
And to bring the wicked to justice
according to their crime.
40 Now behold, his name was Pahoran.
And Pahoran did fill the seat of his
father,
And did commence his reign in the end of the twenty and fourth year,
over the people of Nephi.
![]()
ALMA 51
1 AND now it came to pass in the commencement of the twenty and fifth year,
Of
the reign of the judges over the people of Nephi,
They having established peace,
Between the people of Lehi,
And the people of Morianton concerning their lands,
And having commenced the twenty and fifth year in peace;
2 Nevertheless, they did not long maintain an entire peace in the land,
For
there began to be a contention among the people concerning the chief judge Pahoran;
For behold, there were a part of the people who desired that a few
particular points of the law should be altered.
3 But behold, Pahoran would not alter nor suffer the law to be altered; therefore, he did not hearken,
To those who had sent in their voices with their
petitions concerning the altering of the law.
4 Therefore, those who were desirous that the law should be altered were angry
with him,
And desired that he should no longer be chief judge over the land;
Therefore there arose a warm dispute concerning the matter,
But not unto
bloodshed.
5 And it came to pass that those who were desirous,
That Pahoran should be
dethroned from the judgment-seat,
Were called king-men, for they were desirous
that the law should be altered,
In a manner to overthrow the free government and
to establish a king over the land.
6 And those who were desirous that Pahoran should remain chief judge over
the land,
Took upon them the name of freemen; and thus was the division among
them,
For the freemen had sworn or covenanted to maintain their rights,
And the
privileges of their religion by a free government.
7 And it came to pass that this matter,
Of their contention was settled by the
voice of the people.
And it came to pass that the voice of the people came in
favor of the freemen,
And Pahoran retained the judgment-seat, which caused much
rejoicing among the brethren of Pahoran,
And also many of the people of liberty,
who also put the king-men to silence,
That they durst not oppose but were
obliged to maintain the cause of freedom.
8 Now those who were in favor of kings were those of high birth, and they sought
to be kings;
And they were supported by those who sought power and authority
over the people.
9 But behold, this was a critical time for such contentions to be among the
people of Nephi;
For behold, Amalickiah had again stirred up the hearts of the
people of the Lamanites,
Against the people of the Nephites, and he was gathering together
soldiers,
From all parts of his land, and arming them,
And preparing for
war with all diligence;
For he had sworn to drink the blood of Moroni.
10 But behold, we shall see that his promise which he made was rash;
Nevertheless, he did prepare himself and his armies to come to battle against
the Nephites.
11 Now his armies were not so great as they had hitherto been, because of the
many thousands,
Who had been slain by the hand of the Nephites; but
notwithstanding their great loss,
Amalickiah had gathered together a wonderfully
great army,
Insomuch that he feared not to come down to the land of Zarahemla.
12 Yea, even Amalickiah did himself come down, at the head of the Lamanites.
And
it was in the twenty and fifth year of the reign of the judges;
And it was at
the same time that they had begun to settle the affairs,
Of their contentions
concerning the chief judge, Pahoran.
13 And it came to pass that when the men who were called king-men,
Had heard that
the Lamanites were coming down to battle against them,
They were glad in their
hearts; and they refused to take up arms;
For they were so wroth with the chief
judge and also with the people of liberty,
That they would not take up arms to
defend their country.
14 And it came to pass that when Moroni saw this,
And also saw that the
Lamanites were coming into the borders of the land,
He was exceedingly wroth
because of the stubbornness of those people,
Whom he had labored with so much
diligence to preserve;
Yea, he was exceedingly wroth; his soul was filled with
anger against them.
15 And it came to pass that he sent a petition, with the voice of the people,
Unto the governor of the land, desiring that he should read it,
And give him
(Moroni) power to compel those dissenters,
To defend their country or to put them
to death.
16 For it was his first care to put an end,
To such contentions and dissensions
among the people;
For behold, this had been hitherto a cause of all their
destruction.
And it came to pass that it was granted according to the voice of
the people.
17 And it came to pass that Moroni commanded that his army should go against
those king-men,
To pull down their pride and their nobility and level them with
the earth,
Or they should take up arms and support the cause of liberty.
18 And it came to pass that the armies did march forth against them;
And they
did pull down their pride and their nobility,
Insomuch that as they did lift
their weapons of war,
To fight against the men of Moroni;
They were hewn down and
leveled to the earth.
19 And it came to pass that there were four thousand of those dissenters,
Who
were hewn down by the sword; and those of their leaders who were not slain in
battle,
Were taken and cast into prison, for there was no time for their trials
at this period.
20 And the remainder of those dissenters, rather than be smitten down to the
earth by the sword,
Yielded to the standard of liberty, and were compelled to
hoist the title of liberty upon their towers,
And in their cities, and to take
up arms in defense of their country.
21 And thus Moroni put an end to those king-men,
That there were not any known
by the appellation of king-men;
And thus he put an end to the stubbornness and
the pride of those people,
Who professed the blood of nobility; but they were
brought down to humble themselves,
Like unto their brethren, and to fight
valiantly for their freedom from bondage.
22 Behold, it came to pass that while Moroni was thus breaking down the wars and
contentions,
Among his own people, and subjecting them to peace and civilization,
And making regulations to prepare for war against the Lamanites,
Behold, the
Lamanites had come into the land of Moroni,
Which was in the borders by the
seashore.
23 And it came to pass that the Nephites,
Were not sufficiently strong in the
city of Moroni;
Therefore Amalickiah did drive them, slaying many.
And it came to pass Amalickiah took possession of the city,
Yea, possession of all
their fortifications.
24 And those who fled out of the city of Moroni came to the city of Nephihah;
And also the people of the city of Lehi gathered themselves together,
And made preparations and were ready to receive the Lamanites battle.
25 But it came to pass that Amalickiah would not suffer the Lamanites,
To go
against the city of Nephihah to battle,
But kept them down by the seashore,
Leaving men in every city to maintain and defend it.
26 And thus he went on, taking possession of many cities, the city of Nephihah,
And the city of Lehi, and the city of Morianton, and the city of Omner, and the
city of Gid,
And the city of Mulek, all of which were on the east borders by the
seashore.
27 And thus had the Lamanites obtained, by the cunning of Amalickiah,
So many
cities, by their numberless hosts,
All of which were strongly fortified,
After
the manner of the fortifications of Moroni;
All of which afforded strongholds
for the Lamanites.
28 And it came to pass that they marched to the borders of the land Bountiful,
Driving the Nephites before them and slaying many.
29 And it came to pass that they were met by Teancum,
Who had slain Morianton
and had headed his people in his flight.
30 And it came to pass that he headed Amalickiah also, as he was marching forth
with his numerous army,
That he might take possession of the land Bountiful, and also the land northward.
31 But behold he met with a disappointment by being repulsed by Teancum and his
men,
For they were great warriors; for every man of Teancum,
Did exceed the
Lamanites in their strength,
And in their skill of war, insomuch that they did
gain advantage over the Lamanites.
32 And it came to pass that they did harass them, insomuch that they did slay
them even until it was dark.
And it came to pass that Teancum and his men did
pitch their tents in the borders of the land of Bountiful;
And Amalickiah did pitch
his tents in the borders on the beach by the seashore,
And after this manner
were they driven.
33 And it came to pass that when the night had come,
Teancum and his servant
stole forth and went out by night,
And went into the camp of Amalickiah; and
behold, sleep had overpowered them,
Because of their much fatigue, which was
caused by the labors and heat of the day.
34 And it came to pass that Teancum stole privily into the tent of the king,
And
put a javelin to his heart; and he did cause the death of the king,
Immediately that he did not awake his servants.
35 And he returned again privily to his own camp,
And behold, his men were
asleep,
And he awoke them,
And told them all the things that he had done.
36 And he caused that his armies should stand in readiness,
Lest the Lamanites
had awakened and should come upon them.
37 And thus endeth the twenty and fifth year of the reign of the judges,
Over the
people of Nephi; and thus endeth the days of Amalickiah.
![]()
ALMA 52
1 AND now, it came to pass in the twenty and sixth year of the reign of the
judges,
Over the people of Nephi, behold, when the Lamanites awoke on the first
morning of the first month,
Behold, they found Amalickiah was dead in his own
tent;
And they also saw that Teancum was ready to give them battle on that day.
2 And now, when the Lamanites saw this they were affrighted;
And they abandoned
their design in marching into the land northward,
And retreated with all their
army into the city of Mulek, and sought protection in their fortifications.
3 And it came to pass that the brother of Amalickiah was appointed king over the
people;
And his name was Ammoron; thus king Ammoron, the brother of king
Amalickiah,
Was appointed to reign in his stead. And it came to pass,
That he did command that his people,
Should maintain those
cities,
Which they had taken by the shedding of blood;
For they had not taken
any cities save they had lost much blood.
5 And now, Teancum saw that the Lamanites were determined to maintain those
cities which they had taken,
And those parts of the land which they had obtained
possession of;
And also seeing the enormity of their number,
Teancum thought it
was not expedient,
That he should attempt to attack them in their forts.
6 But he kept his men round about, as if making preparations for war;
Yea, and
truly he was preparing to defend himself against them,
By casting up walls round
about and preparing places of resort.
7 And it came to pass that he kept thus preparing for war,
Until Moroni had sent
a large number of men to strengthen his army.
8 And Moroni also sent orders unto him that he should retain all the prisoners,
Who fell into his hands; for as the Lamanites had taken many prisoners,
That he
should retain all the prisoners of the Lamanites,
As a ransom for those whom the
Lamanites had taken.
9 And he also sent orders unto him that he should fortify the land Bountiful,
And secure the narrow pass which led into the land northward,
Lest the Lamanites
should obtain that point,
And should have power to harass them on every side.
10 And Moroni also sent unto him, desiring him,
That he would be faithful in
maintaining that quarter of the land,
And that he would seek every opportunity
to scourge the Lamanites in that quarter,
As much as was in his power, that
perhaps he might take again by stratagem,
Or some other way those cities which
had been taken out of their hands;
And that he also would fortify and strengthen
the cities round about,
Which had not fallen into the hands of the Lamanites.
11 And he also said unto him, I would come unto you,
But behold, the Lamanites
are upon us,
In the borders of the land by the west sea;
And behold, I go against
them, therefore I cannot come unto you.
12 Now, the king (Ammoron) had departed out of the land of
Zarahemla,
And had
made known unto the queen concerning the death of his brother,
And had gathered
together a large number of men,
And had marched forth against the Nephites,
On
the borders by the west sea.
13 And thus he was endeavoring to harass the Nephites,
And to draw away a part
of their forces to that part of the land,
While he had commanded those whom he
had left to possess the cities which he had taken,
That they should also harass
the Nephites on the borders by the east sea,
And should take possession of their lands as much as it was in their power,
According to the power of their armies.
14 And thus were the Nephites in those dangerous circumstances,
in the ending of
the twenty and sixth year of the reign of the judges over the people of Nephi.
15 But behold, it came to pass in the twenty and seventh year of the reign of
the judges,
That Teancum, by the command of Moroni──who had established armies,
To protect the south and the west borders of the land,
And had begun his march
towards the land Bountiful,
That he might assist Teancum with his men,
In
retaking the cities which they had lost──
16 And it came to pass that Teancum had received orders,
To make an attack upon
the city of Mulek, and retake it if it were possible.
17 And it came to pass that Teancum made preparations to make an attack upon the
city of Mulek,
And march forth with his army against the Lamanites; but he saw
that it was impossible,
That he could overpower them while they were in
their fortifications;
Therefore he abandoned his designs and returned again to the
city Bountiful,
To wait for the coming of Moroni, that he might receive strength
to his army.
18 And it came to pass that Moroni did arrive with his army at the land of
Bountiful,
In the latter end of the twenty and seventh year of the reign of the
judges over the people of Nephi.
19 And in the commencement of the twenty and eighth year, Moroni and Teancum,
And
many of the chief captains held a council of war──
What they should do to cause
the Lamanites,
To come out against them to battle;
Or that they by some
means flatter them out of their strongholds,
That they might gain advantage over
them and take again the city of Mulek.
20 And it came to pass they sent embassies to the army of the Lamanites which
protected the city of Mulek,
To their leader, whose name was Jacob, desiring him
that he would come out with his armies,
To meet them upon the plains between the
two cities.
But behold, Jacob, who was a Zoramite,
Would not come out with his
army to meet them upon the plains.
21 And it came to pass that Moroni, having no hopes of meeting them upon fair
grounds,
Therefore, he resolved upon a plan that he might decoy the Lamanites
out of their strongholds.
22 Therefore he caused that Teancum should take a small number of men,
And march
down near the seashore; and Moroni and his army,
By night, marched in the
wilderness,
On the west of the city Mulek;
And thus, on the morrow, when the
guards of the Lamanites,
Had discovered Teancum, they ran and told it unto Jacob,
their leader.
23 And it came to pass that the armies of the Lamanites did march forth against Teancum,
Supposing by their numbers to overpower Teancum because of the
smallness of his numbers.
And as Teancum saw the armies of the Lamanites coming
out against him,
He began to retreat down by the seashore, northward.
24 And it came to pass that when the Lamanites saw,
That he began to flee, they
took courage and pursued them with vigor.
And while Teancum was thus leading
away the Lamanites who were pursuing them in vain,
Behold, Moroni commanded that
a part of his army who were with him,
Should march forth into the city, and take
possession of it.
25 And thus they did, and slew all those who had been left,
To protect the city, yea, all those who would not yield up their weapons of war.
26 And thus Moroni had obtained possession of the city Mulek with a part of his
army,
While he marched with the remainder to meet the Lamanites,
When they should
return from the pursuit of Teancum.
27 And it came to pass that the Lamanites,
Did pursue Teancum,
Until they came
near the city Bountiful,
And then they were met by Lehi and a small army,
Which
had been left to protect the city Bountiful.
28 And now behold, when the chief captains of the Lamanites,
Had beheld Lehi with
his army coming against them, they fled in much confusion,
Lest perhaps they
should not obtain the city Mulek before Lehi should overtake them;
For they were
wearied because of their march, and the men of Lehi were fresh.
29 Now the Lamanites did not know that Moroni had been in their rear,
With his
army, and all they feared was Lehi and his men.
30 Now Lehi was not desirous to overtake them,
Till they should meet Moroni and his army.
31 And it came to pass that before the Lamanites had retreated far,
They were
surrounded by the Nephites, by the men of Moroni on one hand,
And the men of
Lehi on the other, all of whom were fresh and full of strength;
But the
Lamanites were wearied because of their long march.
32 And Moroni commanded his men that they should fall upon them,
Until they had
given up their weapons of war.
33 And it came to pass that Jacob, being their leader,
Being also a Zoramite, and having an unconquerable spirit,
He led the Lamanites forth to battle with
exceeding fury against Moroni.
34 Moroni being in their course of march, therefore Jacob was determined to slay
them,
And cut his way through to the city of Mulek. but behold, Moroni and his
men were more powerful;
Therefore they did not give way before the Lamanites.
35 And it came to pass that they fought on both hands with exceeding fury;
And
there were many slain on both sides; yea, and Moroni was wounded and Jacob was
killed.
36 And Lehi pressed upon their rear with such fury with his strong men,
That the
Lamanites in the rear delivered up their weapons of war;
And the remainder of
them, being much confused,
Knew not whither to go or to strike.
37 Now Moroni seeing their confusion, he said unto them:
If ye will bring forth
your weapons of war and deliver them up,
Behold we will forbear shedding your
blood.
38 And it came to pass,
That when the Lamanites had heard these words,
Their chief captains, all those who were not slain,
Came forth and threw down their
weapons of war at the feet of Moroni,
And also commanded their men that they
should do the same.
39 But behold, there were many that would not;
And those who would not deliver
up their swords,
Were taken and bound, and their weapons of war were taken from
them,
And they were compelled to march with their brethren forth into the land
Bountiful.
40 And now the number of prisoners who were taken exceeded more,
Than the number
of those who had been slain,
Yea, more than those who had been slain on both
sides.
![]()
ALMA 53
1 AND it came to pass that they did set guards over the prisoners of the
Lamanites,
And did compel them to go forth and bury their dead,
Yea, and also
the dead of the Nephites were slain;
And Moroni placed men over them to
guard them while they should perform their labors.
2 And Moroni went to the city of Mulek with Lehi, and took command of the
city
and gave it unto Lehi.
Now behold, this Lehi was a man who had been with Moroni in the more part of all his battles;
And he was a man like unto Moroni, and they
rejoiced in each other's safety;
Yea, they were beloved by each other, and also
beloved by all the people of Nephi.
3 And it came to pass that after the Lamanites had finished burying their dead,
And also the dead of the Nephites, they were marched back into the land
Bountiful;
And Teancum, by the orders of Moroni, caused that they should commence laboring,
In digging a ditch round about the land, or the city,
Bountiful.
4 And he caused that they should build,
A breastwork of timbers upon the inner
bank of the ditch;
And they cast up dirt out of the ditch against the breastwork
of timbers;
And thus they did cause the Lamanites to labor until they had
encircled the city of Bountiful,
Round about with a strong wall of timbers and
earth, to an exceeding height.
5 And this city became an exceeding stronghold ever after;
And in this city they
did guard the prisoners of the Lamanites;
Yea, even within a wall which they had caused them to build with their own hands.
Now Moroni was compelled to cause the
Lamanites to labor,
Because it was easy to guard them while at their labor;
And he desired all his forces,
When he should make an attack upon the Lamanites.
6 And it came to pass that Moroni had thus gained a victory,
Over one of the
greatest of the armies of the Lamanites,
And had obtained possession of the city
of Mulek,
Which was one of the strongest holds of the Lamanites in the land
of Nephi;
And thus he had also built a stronghold to retain his prisoners.
7 And it came to pass that he did no more attempt a battle,
With the Lamanites in
that year,
But he did employ his men in preparing for war,
Yea, and in making
fortifications to guard against the Lamanites,
Yea, and also delivering their
women and their children from famine and affliction,
And providing food for
their armies.
8 And now it came to pass that the armies of the Lamanites on the west sea,
south,
While in the absence of Moroni on account of some intrigue amongst the
Nephites,
Which caused dissensions amongst them, had gained some ground over the
Nephites,
Yea, insomuch, that they had obtained possession,
Of a number of their
cities in that part of the land.
9 And thus because of iniquity amongst themselves, yea, because of dissensions,
And intrigue among themselves they were placed in the most dangerous
circumstances.
10 And now behold, I have somewhat to say concerning the people of Ammon,
Who,
in the beginning, were Lamanites;
But by Ammon and his brethren,
Or rather by
the power and word of God,
They had been converted unto the Lord; and they had
been brought down,
Into the land of Zarahemla, and had ever since been protected
by the Nephites.
11 And because of their oath they had been kept from taking up arms against
their brethren;
For they had taken an oath that they never would shed blood
more;
And according to their oath they would have perished;
Yea, they would have
suffered themselves,
To have fallen into the hands of their brethren,
Had it not
been for the pity and the exceeding love,
Which Ammon and his brethren had had
for them.
12 And for this cause they were brought down,
Into the land of Zarahemla;
And
they ever had been protected by the Nephites.
13 But it came to pass that when they saw the danger,
And the many afflictions
and tribulations which the Nephites bore for them,
They were moved with compassion and were desirous to take up arms in the defense of their country.
14 But behold, as they were about to take their weapons of war,
They were
overpowered by the persuasions of Helaman and his brethren,
For they were about
to break the oath which they had made.
15 And Helaman feared lest by so doing,
They should lose their souls;
Therefore
all those who had entered into this covenant,
Were compelled to behold their
brethren wade through their afflictions,
In their dangerous circumstances at
this time.
16 But behold, it came to pass,
They had many sons,
Who had not entered into a
covenant,
That they would not take their weapons of war,
To defend themselves
against their enemies;
Therefore they did assemble themselves together at this
time,
As many as were able to take up arms, and they called themselves Nephites.
17 And they entered into a covenant to fight for the liberty of the Nephites,
Yea, to protect the land unto the laying down of their lives;
Yea, even they covenanted that they never would give up their liberty,
But they would fight in all cases to protect the Nephites and themselves from bondage.
18 Now behold, there were two thousand of those young men who entered into this
covenant,
And took their weapons of war to defend their country.
19 And now behold, as they never had hitherto been a disadvantage to the
Nephites,
They became now at this period of time also a great support;
For they
took their weapons of war, and they would that Helaman should be their leader.
20 And they were all young men, and they were exceedingly valiant for courage,
And also for strength and activity; but behold, this was not all──
They were men who were true at all times,
In whatsoever thing they were entrusted.
21 Yea, they were men of truth and soberness,
For they had been taught to keep the commandments of God and to walk uprightly before him.
22 And now it came to pass that Helaman did march at the head of his two
thousand stripling soldiers,
To the support of the people in the borders of the
land on the south by the west sea.
23 And thus ended the twenty and eighth year of the reign of the judges,
Over the
people of Nephi.
![]()
ALMA 54
1 AND now it came to pass in the commencement of the twenty and ninth year of
the judges,
That Ammoron sent unto Moroni desiring that he would exchange
prisoners.
2 And it came to pass that Moroni felt to rejoice exceedingly at this request;
For he desired the provisions which were imparted for the support of the
Lamanite prisoners,
For the support of his own people; and he also desired his
own people for the strengthening of his army.
3 Now the Lamanites had taken many women and children,
And there was not a woman
nor a child among all the prisoners of Moroni,
Or the prisoners whom Moroni had
taken; therefore Moroni resolved upon a stratagem,
To obtain as many prisoners of
the Nephites from the Lamanites as it were possible.
4 Therefore he wrote an epistle, and sent it by the servant of Ammoron,
The same
who had brought an epistle to Moroni.
Now these are the words which he wrote
unto Ammoron, saying,
5 Behold, Ammoron, I have written unto you somewhat concerning this war,
Which ye
have waged against my people, or rather which thy brother hath waged against
them,
And which ye are still determined to carry on after his death.
6 Behold, I would tell you somewhat concerning the justice of God,
And the sword
of his almighty wrath,
Which doth hang over you except ye repent,
And withdraw
your armies into your own lands,
Or the land of your possessions, which is the
land of Nephi.
7 Yea, I would tell you these things if ye were capable of hearkening unto them;
Yea, I would tell you concerning that awful hell that awaits to receive such
murderers,
As thou and thy brother have been, except ye repent and withdraw your
murderous purposes,
And return with your armies to your own lands. But as ye have once rejected these things,
And have fought against the people
of the Lord, even so I may expect you will do it again.
9 And now behold, we are prepared to receive you; yea, and except you withdraw
your purposes,
Behold, ye will pull down the wrath of that God whom you have
rejected upon you,
Even to your utter destruction. But, as the Lord liveth,
Our armies shall come upon you except ye withdraw,
And ye shall soon be visited with death,
For we will retain our cities and our
lands;
Yea, and we will maintain our religion and the cause of our God.
11 But behold, it supposeth me that I talk to you, concerning these things in
vain;
Or it supposeth me that thou art a child of hell;
Therefore I will close
my epistle by telling you that I will not exchange prisoners,
Save it be on conditions that ye will deliver up a man and his wife
and his children, for one
prisoner;
If this be the case that ye will do it, I will exchange.
12 And behold, if ye do not this, I will come against you with my armies;
Yea,
even I will arm my women and my children, and I will come against you,
And I
will follow you even into your own land, which is the land of our first inheritance;
Yea, and it shall be blood for blood, yea, life for life;
And I
will give you battle even until you are destroyed from off the face of the
earth.
13 Behold, I am in my anger, and also my people; ye have sought to murder us,
And we have only sought to defend ourselves. But behold,
If ye seek to destroy
us more we will seek to destroy you;
Yea, and we will seek our land, the land of
our first inheritance.
14 Now I close my epistle. I am Moroni; I am a leader of the people of the
Nephites.
15 Now it came to pass that Ammoron, when he had received this epistle, was
angry;
And he wrote another epistle unto Moroni, and these are the words which
he wrote, saying:
16 I am Ammoron, the king of the Lamanites; I am the brother of Amalickiah whom
ye have murdered.
Behold, I will avenge his blood upon you, yea, and I will come
upon you with my armies;
For I fear not your threatenings; for behold, your fathers did wrong their brethren,
Insomuch that they did rob
them of their right to the government,
When it rightly belonged unto them.
18 And now behold, if ye will lay down your arms,
And subject yourselves to be
governed by those to whom the government doth rightly belong,
Then will I cause
that my people shall lay down their weapons and shall be at war no more.
19 Behold, ye have breathed out many threatenings against me and my people;
But
behold, we fear not your threatenings. Nevertheless,
I will grant to exchange prisoners, according to your request, gladly,
That I may preserve my food for my men of war; and we will wage a war which shall be eternal,
Either to the subjecting the Nephites to our authority
or to their eternal extinction.
21 And as concerning that God whom ye say we have rejected, behold, we know not
such a being;
Neither do ye; but if it so be that there is such a being,
We know
not but that he hath made us as well as you.
22 And if it so be that there is a devil and